.^V^^Mo^. (,v- ^
>*•
^.V%^
f X
"^AO^
0^
V ^^ " f. ^ V ^^ ^ ^ ^
" X.^^
./ ^^^
■^ * -ft
z
." >^ ^
.^ <>
O-
V-
C5, * ^^
<
^G^
.i
«^ ^.
' %. A^
^ A^'
^CP<^^
%^^'
\#'
•^'^G^
0^
O
0.^'
fO,
(y .
c
<1^
'*' <
0^
r^^
"^ ^^0^
1^ f? "51 *_ f
rO^ s'' '"" ^^ <^
•%
^\^y(DTPA>i,>/^
M w^i ^^-:::j&^4^k.j:. (
^ W^ 0^ hall cleave (original, he cemented) to his wife : and they twain
shall be one flesh ? Moses, because of the hardness of your
hearts, sufi'ered you to put away your wives ; but from the
beginning it was not so. What therefore God had joined
together, let not man put asunder."^ He then says that a
wife may be put away for one cause only : and that with-
out that cause, " whosoever shall put away his wife, and shall
marry another, committeth adultery.^ Ifo human law can
set aside this law of God^
*Gen. iv. 19. = Gen. il 24. « Matt, xix, 3-9.
THE FIRST MARRIAGE. 35
Thus was celebrated the first marriage. He who made
them one closed it with his blessing. " God blessed them,
and God said, Be fruitful, and multiply, and replenish the
earth and subdue it : and have dominion over every living
thing upon the earth." A delightful residence had been
prepared for them ; and Adam received his bride arrayed
with that garment of beauty, purity, and innocence, with
which her Creator had adorned her. " They were both
naked, the man and his wife, and were not ashamed." ^ Happy
couple ! with unclouded prospects, and yet their honeymoon,
oh, how short !
It is well here to bear in mind the words of our Lord :
" In the resurrection they neither marry, nor are given in
marriage, but are as the angels of God in heaven."^
» Gen. il 25. = Matt. xxii. 30.
CHAPTER XI.
THE FIRST LANGUAGE.
IT appears that as soon as Adam and Eve were created
they could talk. They were not only made able at once
to speak, but with the power of speech they also received a
language. This language was a gift direct from God :
otherwise it could never have been discovered. It is now
communicated from one to another ; and is only acquired by
imitation, and after long practice.
It is interesting to trace what this first language was,
which the Great Creator gave to His children, and which
He used in conversing with them : and to catch the sounds
which our first parents used in their prayers and praises to
their Father and their God, and to express their joys and
sorrows to one another. This language was doubtless the
noblest ever uttered by man : being transmitted to us
through man degraded by the Fall, it comes down, having
lost, perhaps, in some degree, its original purity.
The languages now in use in the world, like the traditions
of the nations which have been perpetuated by language,
are easily traced back to one fountain-head. Those of the
Christian part of it came from the Roman and Greek ; and
they were derived from the Phoenician and Hebrew, their
very alphabets and letters coming the same way. The
Chaldee, Syriac, and Samaritan were dialects of the Hebrew.
The principal languages of the heathen world, the Arabic,
the Persian, and the Sanscrit show a relationship to the
same source. In that language the oldest book, by nearly
a, thousand years, was written.
(36)
THE FIRST LANGUAGE, 37
The first difference in language in the world took place
when the descendants of Noah attempted to build the tower
of Babel. Then " the wliole earth was of one language and
of one speech." To restrain those who began to build the
tower, and to keep them from following out their imagination,
the Lord said : " Let us go down, and there confound their
language, that they may not understand one another's speech."^
This confusion of tongues occurred among those who had
forsaken God, leaving the original language with His chil-
dren — with those who retained His word and his worship.
They never could lose the language which contained the
knowledge of all that they held most dear ; the precepts and
promises of their Ood ; and even the names by which He
had made himself known to them, and which they constantly
used in addressing Him. There was no reason why their
language should be changed as in the case of Babel, And
as long as the Church of God is in the world, which will be
to the end of it, the Hebrew will be cherished as the first
revelation of God through His word. Through it alone He
spake to man for four thousand years : in it He gave the
law written with His own finger; and on the cross, our
Lord used it in speaking those memorable words : " Eli,
Eli, lama Sabacthani ? " — My God, my God, why hast thou
forsaken me ?
The first names in the world, whether given to men,
places, the Sabbath, or to religious rites, were associated
with something connected with the object named ; and in
many places of the sacred history the reason is recorded
why the person or thing was so named. These first names
are all Hebrew ; and the explanation or meaning of them is
also in Hebrew, thus proving that it was the language used
at the time they were so named. It was thus with the
names of Adam, Eve, Cain, Seth, Noah, etc., which all have
a meaning. The wonderful names by which God has con-
^ Gen, xL 6.
38 FIEST THINGS.
descended to reveal Himself to iis, the great names Jehovah,
and Jesus, or Joshua, are also Hebrew, and Ml of meaning.
It is remarkable, that the first confusion of tongues oc-
curred in consequence of the evil imaginations of men ; and
that the first work of the Holy Ghost, when He descended
on the day of Pentecost, was the gift of tongues to bring men
back to God, We are told that in heaven, an innumerable
company, gathered of all nations and tongues, unite in one
voice, ascribing, "Salvation to God and unto the Lamb."^
The Jews had a tradition, that before the fall, animals
could talk. Josephus, in his history, speaking of the temp-
tation, says : '' All living creatures had one language.'^
Some of them certainly appear to have the organs of speech ;
and even birds can be taught to talk. While we have no
positive knowledge of the matter, we know that animals
have suffered a chans^e with« all creation since the fall. It
does not appear that Eve was surprised that the serpent
could speak ; but she could not well be surprised at any-
thing ; for where every thing was new, nothing could be
particularly strange.
It is interesting to trace words back from language to
language to their source, and to see how original words in
traveling through time expand and grow. For instance,
from capli or cap, Hebrew, the hoUoiv of the liand, comes the
latin captivus, captive, a person held in hand ; also, cavuSj
cave. The tap of the drum from the Hebrew tap to strike^
to heat. Cypher, a mode of writing, also numbers ; from
seplier, to count, to write. Many of our words sound almost
the same in both languages ; as, Auil, evil ; Dura, to be
silent ; Hid, to howl ; Sac, sackcloth ; Kara, to cry ; Sir,
a prince, etc. How natural it is for all infants in their first
attempts to speak, to say ah-bah-ah, or em-mem-em. How
few know that these words were used by the first children
in the world to express words dear to all. In Hebrew, Ab,
or Ahhay means father, and Em means mother.
* Rev. v4i. 9.
CHAPTER XII.
FIRST WORK — FIRST SABBATH — FIRST FOOD.
THE idea that most persons entertain that work i^ part
of the curse, a consequence of sin and of the Fall, is
a great mistake. History reveals to us that all holy beings
work. The first verse' of history, the first revelation of God
speaks of Him as working. God created the heaven and the
earth. Again it says, " On the seventh day God ended his
worky^ Our Lord used the same manner of expression in
speaking to the Jews : " My Father worketh hitherto, and I
work." ^ We have already seen that the holy angels are
" ministering spirits." It should not be considered strange,
therefore, that so soon as Adam was created, work was
found for him even in Eden. The record says, " the Lord
God took the man, and put him into the garden of Eden to
dress it and to keep ity^ Endowed with a mind of almost
unlimited capacity, and a body prepared for work, and with
an earth filled with treasures for his use and comfort, part
of the blessing upon him was, " replenish the earth and sub-
due it."'' We find, also, God 'bringing to his notice every
living creature : and Adam gave names to them all.^ Em-
ployment was found for hand and tongue, for mind and heart.
The command " Six days shalt thou labor," was thus first
given to man in Paradise ; and like all the other commands
of God, it is not a curse but in order for a blessing. For
the commands of God are all given in love. The promises
made to the diligent and universal experience show that
» Gen. u. 2. = John v. 17. ^ Gen. il 15.
* Gen. i 28, * Gen. il 20.
(39)
40 FIEST THINGS.
our prosperity and our happiness are connected with work.
And although we are saved by faith, yet we are told, that
" Faith without works is dead.'' ^
And now appears another of the great foundation-stones
of history ; one which the Word of God, the history of
the world, and the varied condition of the nations now on
the earth, abundantly prove to be connected with the highest
interests of man. Joined to the command to work is an-
other command: "Remember the Sabbath day, to keep it
holy.""
Many look upon this commandment as first given by Mo-
ses to the Jews at Mount Sinai ; but it was not so. The
Sabbath was instituted at creation, and was given to man in
the garden of Eden. " On the seventh day God ended his
work which he had made ; and he rested on the seventh day
from all his work which he had made. And God blessed
the seventh day, and sanctified it : because that in it he had
rested from all his work, which God created and made."^
The word Sabhath, means rest. The Hebrew word trans-
lated "rested" means rather ceased; being not opposed to
weariness, but to action : as God can neither know fatigue
or need rest. Thus God " blessed " the JiJ'st day after crea-
tion was finished, and " hallowed it." The first day of man's
life was the Sabbath. The fourth commandment does not
institute the Sabbath but reminds us of it ; and it tells us to
" Remeiiiiber the Sabbath day, to keep it holy," and uses the
same words to enforce it, that God did when he sanctified
it at creation. Man, the creature, was thus continually to
be reminded of his Creator.
The Sabbath, as a sign between God and his people, has
now additional claims ; two other important facts in history,
each causing a corresponding change of the day, have been
connected with it. It is now a sign of creation, redemption,
and Banctification. " I gave them my sabbaths, to be a sign
* James u. 26. ' Gen. ii. 2.
FIRST SABBATH. 4l
between me and tliem, that tliey miglit know tliat I am the
Lord that sanctify them."^ Each seventh day after the first
day of man's life, being to him the first day of the week, con-
tinued to be thus consecrated until the deliverance of the
Lord's people from Egypt, when, with the change of the be-
ginning of the year, the Sabbath was changed to the seventh
day, the day of the Exodus, to commemorate that event.
" Remember that thou wast a servant in the land of Egypt,
and that the Lord thy God brought thee out thence through
a mighty hand and by a stretched out arm ; therefore, the
Lord thy God commanded thee to keep the sabbath day."^
That day passed away, with the other types of the Jewish
dispensation, when the Creator had accomplished the great
deliverance of His people by the sacrifice of Himself. On
the first day of the week, the work of redemption was com-
pleted. On that day the Lord rose from the dead ; and on
that day he repeatedly appeared to his disciples as they
were assembled together.^ On that day, the day of Pen-
tecost, the Holy Ghost descended. A change of the Sab-
bath consequently followed, and the first day of the week,^
the first day of the life of the Church in Christ its head,
again became the Lord's day, and was consecrated as the
Sabbath. Upon the first day of the week, therefore, the
disciples came together to commemorate the Lord's death
at His table, and to attend preaching,^ and' upon that day
" every one is directed to lay by him in store an offering to
the Lord as God hath prospered him."^
We find that God hallowed not only the first of man's
time, and the first day of the Church risen in Christ, but He
also claimed of his people the first fruits of their fields, the
first born of their beasts and their first born son."^
^ Ezek. XX. 12 ; Exod. xxxi. 13. ^ Deut. v. 15. ^ John xx. 19, 26.
* The wording in Matt, xxviii. 1, is remarkable. In the original it reads,
'*In the end of the Sahbatlis, as it began to dawn toward the first of
the Sahbatlis."
« Acts XX. 7. " 1 Cor. xvi. 2. '^Exod. xiii. 12; Levit. xxiii. 10.
42 FIRST THINGSv:
The division of time into weeks was continued, even in
places where men had ceased to acknowledge Him who had
hallowed the seventh day. Even the number seven was con-
sidered a sacred or mystical number. Laban speaks of
weeks.^ The ancient Assyrians, descendants of Shem ; the
Egyptians, descendants of Ham ; the Arabians, descendants
of Ishmael ; the Phoenicians, and other idolatrous nations,
retained the week of seven days. And now, among the dif-
ferent nations of the earth, almost every day of the week is
observed by one or another as a weekly festival or holiday,
as a seventh day or sabbath : the Christian keeping Sun-
day, the Jews Saturday, the Mahommedans Friday, etc.
The Sabbath is one of the greatest blessings ever con-
ferred upon man ; it is a necessity of his nature, body and
soul both requiring it. Even working cattle need it, and
■will do more work by resting one day in Sbven. The Lord
says : " The Sabbath. was made for man."^
Both history and God's word teach us, that this law, con-
nected with our creation and our redemption, never has been,
and never can be, broken with impunity. Infidels, in their
vain attempts to dethrone their Creator, have tried to put
aside His day. In the French Revolution of 1793, the Con-
vention abolished the Sabbath ; appointed instead of it every
tenth day a period of rest, and directed the measurement of
time by divisions of ten days. This was preparatory to a
general abolition of the Christian religion, and a substitution
of the worship of Reason in its stead. The result was, a
state of society too terrible and too horrible even for Infidels
to bear. And France was soon compelled to retrace her
steps. Brutality and crime, physical and moral degradation,
always accompany the desecration of the Sabbath ; and the
wrath of God is visibly revealed.
What a day of joy and gladness the first Sabbath must
have been to Adam and Eve! The first day after their
^ Gen. xxix. 27. ^ Mark ii. 27.
FIRST FOOD. 43
creation and tlieir union, the iiglit of the first morning they
ever beheld, was the Sabbath ; and it was given to them
that they might, in sweet fellowship with one another, con-
template the wonderful works of their Creator, all minister-
ing to their happiness ; and that they might hold a day of
uninterrupted loving communion with one another and with
their Father, God. It was probably the only Sabbath they
ever thus enjoyed.
The first food prepared for man, and given to him in his
first estate, was plain and simple. Fruits and vegetables, in
the abundance and variety, however, of the garden which
God had planted, gratified his taste, while supporting his
life. " Every herb bearing seed, and every tree, in the which
is the fruit of a tree yielding seed ; to you it shall be for
meat."^ The animals and the fowls of the air could then
dwell together in peace without fear, for " every green herb "
supplied their wants.
God selected that, which was to supply this daily recur-
ring waiit of our nature, as a field in which to place a test
of that faith, confidence and obedience, without which a
creature cannot be happy. Our first parents were restricted
from the fruit of only one tree ; that one they were forbidden
even to touch. They did not need it ; they had no desire for
it. They had no knowledge of evil, nor of that Evil Being
who now appears in history,
« Gen. i. 29, 30.
CHAPTER XIII.
THE DEYIL — DEMONS — FAMILIAR SPIRITS,
\HE history of angels and of men confirms the important
testimony of God's word, that creatures left to the
freedom of their own will^ though created holy, will not
continue so, unless constantly upheld hy the grace and
power of God.
In the history of angels we have the first. reyelation of
God's grace ; and, that as a sovereign, He dispenses that
grace according to his own will. His " elect angels" ^ were
upheld : the rest were allowed to fall. In the history of
man we have the first intimation that God is a God of
mercy, and that, in dispensing mercy, He is likewise sover-
eign. Some men are elected, called, justified, and saved f
while the rest are left to their own will, and to follow their
own wicked inclinations. " He hath mercy on whom he
w^ill have mercy, and whom he will he hardeneth." " Shall
the thing formed say to him that formed it, Why hast thou
made me thus ? Hath not the potter power over the clay ?" ^
Rather let us say with the Lord Jesus : '' I thank theej O
Father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid
these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed
them unto babes. Even so. Father ; for so it seemed good
in thy sight." ''
A great number of angels "kept not their first estate,
but left their own habitation.''^ They are of different
ranks, and are described as, " principalities, powers, rulers
^ 1 Tim. V. 21. 2 Eom. yiii. 29. ^ Rom. ix. 18, 20, 21.
* Matt. xi. 25. * Jude 6.
THE DEVIL. : 45
of the darkness of this world, and spiritual wickedness,
or wicked spirits." ^ Among them is one so preeminent,
that while they are all called devils, or demons, he is known
as the Devil : and the others are spoken of as his angels.^
He is called " Beelzebub, the prince of the devils :" ^ and is
said to have a kingdom/ The word Devil, from the Greek,
Diaholos, means Calumniator or Accuser. Another name he
bears, Satan, means Adversary or Accuser. Hence he is
called " the accuser of the brethren."^ His false accusations
were the commencement of Job's trials. Satan came with
the sons of God before the Lord, and said, " Doth Job fear
God for nought ? Put forth thine hand now, and touch all
that he hath, and he will curse thee to thy face." ^ He is
known also as the " prince of this world ; ^ " the god of this
world; """the father of unbelievers, even though they be
children of Abraham, a murderer from the beginning, a liar,
and the father of it." ^ Though all the devils are deceivers
and adversaries ; and though the Bible says : " Some shall
depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits, and
doctrines of devils ;" ^° yet we are warned particularly
against their great leader : " Be sober, be vigilant ; because
your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion, walketh about,
seeking whom he may devour." ^^ He is the great " deceiver,
that deceiveth the nations :" ^^ " the prince of the power of
the air, the spirit that now worketh in the children of dis-
obedience." "
" God spared not the angels that sinned, but cast them
down to hell." ^^ Our Lord said : " I beheld Satan as light-
ning fall from heaven." ^^ From all accounts, Satan was
probably the most intelligent, the most powerful, the greatest
' * Ephes. vi. 12. ^ Job. i. 9, 11. "1 Peter v. 8.
^ Matt. iv. 5, 8 ; Rev. xii. 9. ^ John xii. 31; xiv. 30. ^'^ Rev. xx. 3, 8, 10.
3 Matt. xii. 24. " 2 Cor. iv. 4. " Eph. ii. 2.
* Matt. xii. 26. ^ John viii. 44. " 2 Peter ii. 4.
^ Ker. xii. 10. " 1 Tim. iv. 1, " Luke x. 18,
46 FIEST THINGS.
being ever created. His condemnation was pride.^ He
exalted himself against God, and his first temptation of man
was telling him : " Ye shall be as God."
•' Pride, self-adoring pride ; was primal cause
Of all sin past, all pain, all woe to come.
Unconquerable pride ; first, eldest sin.
Great fountain head of evil ! highest source,
Whence flowed rebellion 'gainst the Omnipotent.
Whence hate of man, and all else ill.
Pride at the bottom of the human heart
Lay, and gave root and nourishment to all
That ffrew above. Great ancestor of vice !
Hate, unbelief, and blasphemy of God." — Pollok.
Well might the prophet exclaim : " How art thou fallen
from heaven, Lucifer, son of the morning ! how art thou
cut down to the ground." ^ For fallen angels no Saviour, no
redemption was provided : our Lord " took not on him the
nature of angels." ^ " He hath reserved them in everlasting
chains under darkness, unto the judgment of the great day." ^
We are told " the devils believe that there is one God, and
tremble." ^ And Satan, the Devil, is said to have " great
wrath, because he knoweth that he hath but a short time." ^
Men little think what an influence the Devil and his
angels have had in the history of the world, from creation
to the present time. Even the children of God, as they are
apt to forget the ministering of holy angels, also forget their
constant exposure to the snares of evil ones ; and need con-
tinually to be told, " Watch and pray, that ye enter not into
temptation." Happy are they that the great Shepherd
watches over them ! as He did over Peter when He said :
" Simon, Simon, behold Satan hath desired to have you, that
he may sift you as wheat : but I have prayed for thee that
thy faith fail not." ^
* 1 Tim. iii. 6. ' Isaiah xiv. 12. '' Heb. ii. 16. "* Jude 6.
* James xL 19. * Rev. xil 12. ' Lulre xxii. 81.
FAMILIAR SPIRITS. 47
From the beginning we find, that the Devil has had a hand,
and sometimes a controlling one, in all the most important
events of the history of man. The word of God teaches us
that devils can enter into men and dwell in them. That one
may go out of a man and afterwards return and take " seven
other spirits more wicked than himself and enter in and
dwell there." ^ Out of Marv MasTdalene seven devils were
cast : ^ out of a Gadarene, Jesus cast out a " Legion : because
many devils were entered into him." ^ When great ends
were to be accomplished, the Prince of the Devils, " the
tempter," himself acted. He tempted Eve : he " stood up
against Israel, and provoked David to number Israel ;" * he
tempted our Lord in the wilderness. And in his greatest
effort, when he tried to destroy Jesus, ^' Satan entered into
Judas surnamed Iscariot," ^ and moved him to betray his
master. Little did Satan think that he was assisting to
carry out " the purpose for which the Son of God was mani-
fested, that he might destroy the works of the devil : " ^ and
that the time predicted was then come, that his own head
should be crushed.
During the four thousand years of the history which God
has given to us, frequent reference is made to wicked per-
sons having familiar spirits ; and consulting with them : and
also to people seeking information from the dead. The word
7iecromancer, Deut. xviii. 11, means " one who seeks enquiries
of the dead." For such and other abominations the Lord
destroyed the Canaanites."^ About four hundred years after-
wards, " Saul died for his transgression against the Lord, and
also for asking counsel of one that had a familiar spirit." ^
The law of God to the Jews on this subject was, " A man or
woman that hath a familiar spirit shall surely be put to
death." ^ " The soul that turneth after such as have familiar
* Matt. xii. 45. * 1 Chron, xxi. 1. ^ Deut. xviii. 12.
2 Mark xvi. 9. ^ Luke xxii. 3 ; John xiil 27. ^ 1 Chron. x. 13.
' Luke viii. 30. ° 1 John iii. 8. ° Levit. xx. 27.
48 FIESTTHINGSo"^
spirits, 1 will even set my face against that soul, and will cut
him off from among his people." ^ We are told that wicked
Manasseh, three hundred and fifty years after Saul, " dealt
with a familiar spirit : ^ and afterwards that his grandson
Josiah put away from the land, with other abominations,
" the workers with familiar spirits." ^ When our Saviour
was on the earth, Devils frequently spoke through men, even
acknowledging him •' as the Holy one of God ; " " Christ
the Son of God."^ But he rebuked them and would not
suffer them to speak or testify of him.^ In Philippi, " a
damsel possessed with a spirit of divination, which brought
her masters much gain by soothsaying, cried after the
apostles, saying, These men are the servants of the most
high God, which shew unto us the way of salvation. Paul
being grieved, turned and said to the spirit, I command thee
in the name of Jesus Christ to come out of her. And he
came out the same hour." ^
The casting of devils and evil spirits out of persons, is
spoken of as occurring almost in every place visited by our
Saviour, or the apostles. In all ages, we see that men are
inclined to " seek unto them that have familiar spirits, and
to the dead, rather than to God, his law, and his testimonv." ^
Abraham's answer to the man in hell who wanted to send one
from the dead to convert his brethren is worthy of notice :
" If they hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they
be persuaded, though one rose from the dead." ^
Devils will take part in the history of man till the end of
the world. We are told that in the millennium, that old ser-
pent, which is the Devil, and Satan, shall be bound a thousand
years ; and when the thousand years are expired, Satan shall
be loosed out of his prison, and shall go out to deceive the
nations ; to gather them, as the sand of the sea in number, to
^ Levit. XX. 6. ^ 2 Kings xxiii. 24. ^ Mark iii. 12; Luke iv. 41,
^ 2 Chron. xxxiii. 6. * Luke iv. 34, 41. ^ Acts xvL 16.
, ?-Isa. viii. 19. ^ Luke xvi. 31.
THE DEVIL. 49
battle : and while they compass the camp of the saints about,
fire shall come down from God out of heaven, and devour
them.^ And then shall be the judgment. God's history
goes further, and says, that devils and some men shall be
associated hereafter. " The King shall say to them on the
left hand, Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire,
prepared for the devil and his angels." ^
As we look through the history of the world, let us notice
the important place which the Devil and his angels take in
every part of that history. Let us remember that he quoted
the word of God when tempting our Saviour : and that to
effect his purpose, " Satan himself is transformed into an
angel of light, and his ministers, as the ministers of right-
eousness." ^ Paul tells us why we should know all this ; " lest
Satan should get an advantage of us : for we are not ignor-
ant of his devices," ^ and also that we may know, with what
fearful beings we have " to wrestle :" so powerful, that Paul
exhorts, " Put on the whole armor of God, that ye may be
able to stand against the wiles of the devil." ^ The Chris-
tian is also told, " Resist the devil, and he will flee from
you :"^ "Be strong in the Lord," " taking the shield of faith,
wherewith ye shall be able to quench all the fiery darts of
the wicked." There is one way in which he is very easily
overcome :
" Satan trembles when ho sees
The weakest saint upon his knees."
Let US now return to the garden of Eden. Behold ! the
prince of the devils is there ; and with that crafty, wicked
Spirit, the gentle, confiding, and unsuspicious Eve is left
alone,
^ Rov. XX. 2, 1.9. ^2 Cor. xi. 14, 15. * Eph. vi. 11, 16.
"Matt. XXV. 41. * 2 Cor. ii. 11. o James it. 1.
CHAPTER XIY.
THE FIRST SIN — THE FALL — FIRST EFFECTS OF SIN — FIRST
GOSPEL CALL.
THE " Prince of the devils " assisted in laying tlie found-
ation-stone which we have now reached ; and to
accomplish his purpose he entered into a serpent. On it
he built " a kingdom ; " ^ making himself the " God of this
world." ^ It is the foundation of all the sin, suffering, and
sorrow, under which the world has groaned for nearly six
thousand years. How exceedingly short and simple, are the
details of a fact, which led to the destruction of one world
by a flood, and will lead to its destruction a second time by
fire ! that led even the Creator himself to take upon him our
nature, and suffer and die, to redeem a people to himself !
The serpent " said unto the woman, Yea, hath God said,
Ye shall not eat of every tree of the garden ? And the
woman said unto the serpent. We m.ay eat of the fruit of the
trees of the garden : but of the fruit of the tree which is in
the midst of the garden, God hath said, Ye shall not eat of
it, neither shall ye touch it, lest ye die. And the serpent
said unto the woman. Ye shall not surely die : for God doth
know that in the day ye eat thereof, then your eyes shall be
opened, and ye shall be as gods (or as God), knowing good
and evil. And when the woman saw that the tree was good
for food, and that it was pleasant to the eyes, and a tree to
be desired to make one wise, she took of the fruit thereof,
and did eat, and gave also unto her husband with her ; and
he did eat."^
' Matt. xii. 24, 26. ' 2 Cor. iv. 4. * Gen. iii. 1.
(50)
THE FIE ST SIN. 51
A few words are spoken to a woman ; she listens, reasons
a moment, eats an apple, gives of it to her husband, and he
eats. In an instant they are changed ; they have lost their
holiness, their spiritual life ; and at once they begin to suffer
the eternal death, " the dying thou shalt die." ^ This change
is called by the expressive vvord, the Fall.
In consequence of the federal relation which Adam sus-
tained to his posterity, as their head, a fountain of corrup-
tion was thus opened, which tainted all the race. All are
"conceived in sin "^ and " born unclean;"^ "there is none
righteous, no, not one!"* and thus " death passed upon all
men, for in Adam, all sinned.'^ ^
Little did our first parents dream of the unutterable woe
and misery they were bringing upon themselves and entail-
ing upon the untold millions of their descendants. We, how-
ever, cannot condemn them. Knowing no sin they had no
idea of fear, of suffering, or of death. Let those condemn
them, who seeing and feeling the effects of sin, and knowing
in some degree what death is, yet love sin, and choose to
continue in it.
It is worthy of notice that the first sin combined " the lust
of the eye," the woman " saw it was pleasant to the eyes ; "
" the lust of the flesh," it was " good for food ; " and " the
pride of life," it was " a tree to be desired to make one
wise." It has been well remarked, that human reason has
been a traitor since the fall. It was so, before the fall ;
they reasoned themselves into sin. It is also worthy of no-
tice, the first sin was unbelief, or want of faith ; therefore,
the gospel message is. Believe ; and salvation is by faith.
The immediate effect of the Fall as shown in Adam, and
also in all his posterity, was a change from the spirit of
love, to the spirit of the devil : fear, a desire to hide away
from God ; hatred of God (for what we dread, we hate), and
1 Gen. ii. 17. ' Psalm li. 5. ^ Job xiv. 4; xv. 14 ; Ps. Iviii. 3.
* Rom. iiL 10. ^ Rom. v. 12, 15, 18 ; 1 Cor. xv. 22.
52 FIEST THINGS.
a spirit of false accusation: excusing himself, and charging
the woman, and even God, as the author of his sin : " The
woman whom thou gavest to be with me, she gave me of
the tree." ^ " Adam and his wife hid themselves from the
presence of the Lord God amongst the trees of the garden.''^
Blessed be God ! He did not leave man to follow his own
inclinations ; to add sin to sin, and to go farther and farther
away from God to eternity. " The Lord God called unto
Adam, and said unto him, Where art thou ? " ^ It was the
first gospel call. God calling after a fugitive sinner to re-
turn to Him, to consider his sin, and to hear a promise, be-
fore pronouncing a curse.
* G6n. iii. 12. " Gen. iii. 8. * Gen. iii. 9.
CHAPTER XY.
THE FIEST PEOMISE OF A SAVIOUR — FIRST EFFECTS OF THE
CURSE — FIRST CLOTHING EXPULSION FROM EDEN.
E can almost hear Satan's shout of triumph when he
found that he had succeeded in casting a blight over
the fair creation which God had pronounced very good : and
as the news reached the fallen angels that their leader had
established a new kingdom ; that man, the noblest work of
God, had fallen into " the snare of the devil/' ^ henceforth
to be the " slave of sin, to obey it ;" ^ to be " the servant of
corruption ; ^ and to be " taken captive by the devil at his
will," ^ we can almost hear the echoes of their demoniac
laughter. We are told that when God's people " have tears
to drink in great measure," " their enemies laugh among them-
selves :" ^ Satan's triumph, however, was very short.
In gaining his temporal kingdom, the Devil had earned
the additional title of " that old Serpent,"^ and also an addi-
tional curse. Man had incurred the penalty of an eternal
" dying thou shalt die :" and all holy beings looked for the
execution of the fearful penalty : for, until now, mercy and
the forgiveness of sins were unknown. Neither fallen angels
nor fallen man sought forgiveness ; nor of themselves would
they ever do so ; for we are told " Repentance and the for-
giveness of sins are given to Israel by Him whom God hath
exalted to be a Prince and a Saviour."^
The Lord God called Adam and Eve to him ; and after
' Gen. iii. 6; 2 Tim. ii. 26. "" Rom. vi. 16. ^ 2 Peter ii. 19.
* 2 Tim. ii. 26. " Psm. Ixxx. 6. ^ Pvev. xx. 2. '' Acts v. 31.
(53)
54 FIRST THINGS.
hearing their wicked excuses, before passing sentence upon
them, He pronounced a curse on the Serpent. As part of
that curse " the Lord God said, I will put enmity between
thee and the woman, and between thy seed and her seed ; it
shall bruise thy head, and thou slialt bruise his heel." ^
Here we reach the most wonderful foundation-stone in his-
tory. In this curse we get the first glimpse of the " Rock of
Ages :" the first gleams of a coming redemption, seen dimly
through the early dawn of revelation. Four thousand years
passed before that revelation was completed. Then it was
fully revealed that He " who worketh all things after the
counsel of his own will,"^ " declaring the end from the begin-
ning, and from ancient times the things that are not yet
done,"^ had not only foreseen the Fall, but had also provided
a remedy for it even before the world was made. A Re-
deemer was found ; and a people were " chosen in him hefore
the foundation of the world :" '' a people who " were to be
saved, not according to their works, but according to God's
own purpose and grace which was given to them in Christ
Jesus hefore the world began J^^
In the curse upon the Serpent we have the first revelation
of the Redeemer and his people. Thenceforth there were
to be two seeds or races on the earth ; ^ the seed of the Ser-
pent, those animated by his Spirit, all the natural seed of
fallen man ; and the seed of the promise, the Saviour, and
those chosen in Him who was to be born of the woman.
There was to be enmity put by God himself between the
two seeds. We shall see that enmity show itself between
the first children, Cain and Abel ; and constantly appearing
in the history of the church and of the world. The seed of
the promise was to be persecuted by the seed of the serpent,'^
but it was finally to triumph ; and the Serpent's power was
to be crushed ^by One who was afterwards more fully re-
^ Gen. iii. 15. ^ Eph. i. 11. ^ Isaiah xlvi. 10. * Eph. i. 4.
* 2 Tim. i. 9. ^ Matt. xiii. 38 ; John viii. 44 ; 1 John iii. 10. ' Gall. iv. 29.
THE FIRST PROMISE OF A SAVIOUR. 55
vealed not only as the Son of man, but also tlie Son of God :
" that he might destroy the works of the Devil." ^
In the course of hii^tory we see that several times, just as
Satan had apparently reached the summit of his ambition
and had almost the entire possession of the world, he was
humbled. It was so at the first temptation ; it was so when
he got possession of the whole world, excepting Noah ; when
God sent the flood and destroyed the children of the devil
and preserved His own : it was so when Satan combined the
church and the state ; the priest, Herod and Pilate, against
Jesus : and it will be so in his last struggle ; when he shall
gather the nations of the earth against the saints, just before
the day of judgment and his own final doom.^
Although a Deliverer was promised, God said to the
woman, " I will greatly multiply thy sorrow ;" and to the
man, " cursed is the ground for thy sake ; in sorrow shalt
thou eat of it all the days of thy life ; thorns also and this-
tles shall it bring forth to thee. In the sweat of thy face
shalt thou eat bread, till thou return unto the ground ; for
out of it was thou taken ; for dust thou art, and unto dust
shalt thou return."^ Thus a curse passed on all creatures
for man's sin ; and since then " the whole creation groaneth
and travaileth in pain together until now,"^ waiting to be
" delivered from the bondage of corruption."
As a token of his faith in the promised Deliverer, Adam
called his wife Eve, that is, life, " because she was the mother
of all living."^ Previously she had been " called Isha, woman,
because she had been taken out of IsJi, Man."^ Eve also
believed the promise ; and, as we shall see hereafter, named
her children accordingly. God had put enmity between her
and the serpent.
Their faith was accepted : for the record goes on to say,
" unto Adam also and to his wife did the Lord God make
» John iii. 8. ' Gen. iii. 16, 19. " Gen. iii. 20.
^ Rev. XX. 9. * Rom. viii. 22, 21. ^ Gen. ii. 23.
56 FIEST THINGS.
coats of skins, and clothed them."^ These skins must liave
been the skins of animals offered in sacrifice : as animals
were not ffiven to man for food until after the flood.^ We
read afterwards of the " Lamb slain from the foundation of
the world ;" ^ and also that Christ's people are clothed with
his righteousness : " God clothed tJiem.'^ ^
Our first parents were then sent forth from the garden of
Eden. They must have been there but a very short time :
probably not one week, perhaps only one day ; for although
part of the blessing in their estate of innocence was, " Be
fruitful and multiply," their first children, Cain and Abel,
were conceived and born in sin, aftei the Fall, and their ex-
pulsion from Eden.^
» Gen. iiL 21. " Gen. ix. 3. ' Rev. xiii. 8.
* Isaiah Ixi. 10 ; Rom. iii 22. • Gen. iv. 1.
CHAPTER XVI.
THE FIRST CHILD — FIRST SACRIFICE — FIRST DEATH.
THE first exclamation of surprise recorded, is that
which Eve uttered when Cain was born. Part of the
penalty inflicted upon the woman for being led by the ser-
pent into sin was, that her sorrows should be greatly multi-
plied in having children.^ However, like most mothers since
her time. Eve " remembered no more the anguish, for joy
that a man was born in the world." ^ She exclaimed, " I
have gotten a man from the Lord,"^ or / have gotten the
ma7i, Jehovah : and she therefore called him Cain, that is,
gotten or acquired. She doubtless thought he was the Mes-
siah, the promised seed by whom the serpent was to be de-
stroyed.
It appears the mother had the naming of the first child
born into the world. We also find the wives of Jacob and
others naming their children from circumstances occurring
or connected with their birth. The hope that they should
be the mother of the promised seed, of Him in whom all the
nations of the earth were to be blessed, was one of the
causes of the intense desire of having children, observable
afterwards among the Jewish women.
Eve soon found, that, instead of being of the seed of
promise, " her gotten," her " Cain was of that wicked one :"*
was one of the seed of the serpent, one of " the children of
the devil." ^ Finding she was mistaken, Eve thought that
^ Gen. iii. 16. « John xvi. 21. ' Gen. iv. 1.
* 1 John iil 12. M John iii. 10.
(57)
58 FIRST THINGS.
her next son was the promised seed, though she had named
him Abel, vanity or sorrow. And when again disappointed
by his death, still clinging to the promise, slie fixed upon an-
other son, born when Adam was one hundred and thirty
years old ; or, according to the Septuagint, two hundred and
thirty years old : and called him Seth, that is, aj)pointed or
put : " For God, said she, hath appointed me another seed
instead of Abel."^
Although heirs of all the world, the first children were not
brought up in idleness. Cain was a tiller of the ground,
and Abel was a keeper of sheep. They had also a religious
training, and were taught to make offerings to the Lord.
" In process of time," or at the end of days^ at the end of
the year or week, most probably on the Sabbath, " Cain
brought of the fruit of the ground an offering unto the
Lord. And Abel, he also brought of the firstlings of his
flock and of the fat thereof. And the Lord had respect
unto Abel and to his offering: but unto Cain and to his
offering he had not respect."^ It is most likely " there came
a fire out from before the Lord and consumed upon the altar
the burnt offering and the fat '' ^ of Abel's sacrifice : as was
the case at special times with sacrifices which the Lord ap-
proved. ^ Abel's sacrifice appears to have been in compliance
with a custom or form of worship already established.
Cain's offering of the fruit of his labors was rejected.
How strange ! Which of us would not prefer being pre-
sented with a basket of choice fruit or flowers, rather than
have a lamb or a dove killed and burnt before us ? It is
common, however, for even earthly kings to dictate the way
in which they are to be approached ; thus we see the law of
king Ahasuerus was, " That whosoever, whether man or
woman, shall come unto the king into the inner court, who is
not called, there is one law of his to put him to death, ex-
* Gen. iv. 25. ^ Gen. iv. 3. ^ Levit. ix. 24; 1 Kings xviii. 38.
* Levit. ix. 24 ; Judges vi. 21 ; 1 Kings xviii. 38 ; 1 Chron. xxi. 26,
THE FIKST SACRIFICE. 59
cept sucli to whom the king shall hold out the golden sceptre
that he may live.'^ ^ The King of kings in all times, has had
an appointed way, in which only his rebellious subjects were
to approach him. None were permitted to enter within the
vail before the mercy-seat in the tabernacle, but Aaron the
high priest ; and he at fixed times only, and with appointed
offerings, under penalty of death. ^ The Kohathites, whose
duty it was to carry the holy things, were thus warned :
" They shall not go in to see when the holy things are covered,
lest they die :"^ and God's command was, " The stranger that
Cometh nigh shall be put to death." ^ " Nadab and Abihu
offered strange fire before the Lord, which he commanded,
them not. And there went out fire from the Lord and de-
voured them, and they died before the Lord." ^ " Uzzah put
forth his hand to the ark of God, and took hold of it ; for
the oxen shook it. And the anger of the Lord was kindled
against Uzzah ; and God smote him there for his error ; and
there he died by the ark of God." ^ King Uzziah, in his
pride, invaded the priest's office, and attempted to burn in-
cense ; while in the act, the Lord smote him with leprosy.'''
Thanks be to God ! we are now permitted, and even directed
througli the Lofd Jesus Christ, to " come boldly to the
throne of grace, that we may obtain mercy, and find grace
to help in time of need." ^
Cain, it appears, did not believe the promise of God ; nor
in the necessity of an atonement for sin. In the pride of
unbelief he offered the unitarian offering of his own pro-
ductions or works : and his offering was rejected. Abel
believed the promise : for we are told, " JSy faith Abel
offered unto God a more excellent sacrifice than Cain, by
which he obtained witness that he was righteous, God testi-
fying of his gifts." ^ He could not have offered it " by faith,"
^ Esther iv. 11. ' JSTurab. iv. 20. ^ Levit. x. 1. '2 Chron. xxvi. 16.
^ Levit. xvi. 2, 13. ^ Numb, xviii. '7. ^ 2 Saml. vi. 6. " Heb. iv. 16.
' Heb. xi. iv.
60 FIESTTHINGS.
unless he knew that God had appohited the sacrifice and
would accept it. God has always declared his abhorrence
of such worship as is taught by the precepts of men, without
being instituted by Him and in accordance with his word. ^
The history of the religions which have been on the earth
has filled volumes : but in reality there have been but two
religions ; the followers of the Lord, and the followers of
the Devil.^ Ever since the offerings of Cain and Abel, the
descendants of Adam, in all places and in all ages, have been
presenting offerings in religious worship. The seed of the
woman, tlie line of patriarchs, prophets and martyrs, all the
chosen people of God, whether Jew or Christian, have come
to God with faith in the " Lamb that was slain," the Lord
Jesus Christ : while the seed of the serpent have, as con-
stantly, been making offerings and sacrifices of every descrip-
tion, according to their own inventions ; and have been as
constantly rejected. And such has been the result even
when they went through the outward forms of the sacrifices
appointed by God. The Pharisees were very punctilious in
observing all the precepts of the laws of Moses, even tything
mint, anise and cummin ; but instead of seeking to be saved
by faith in the sacrifice of the Lord Jesus Christ, they hated
him, and put him to death. They depended on their own
works, and therefore they offered the sacrifice of Cain.
Though children of Abraham, and members of the visible
church, yet they were of the seed of the serpent ; for our
Lord said to them, " Ye are of your father the devil." ^ We
can easily tell of what seed we are : Do we offer unto God
the offering of Cain^ or the offering of Abel f
And here it is remarkable, that the Holy God, who is in-
finite in love, should have directed the killing and the offer-
ing in sacrifice of lambs and doves ; the very emblems of
innocence. Yet such was the fact : and, from the Fall to
^ Isaiah xxix. 13 ; Matt. xv. 9. _^ 1 John iii. 8, 10. _
2 John viii. 44 ; Rev. ii. 9.
THE FIRST DEATHS. 61
the advent of the Lord Jesus Christ, guilty man could ap-
proach God in no other way. It is also remarkable, that the
God of infinite justice should have allowed the only being
who ever lived on earth " holy, harmless and undefiled," to
suffer, and to be put to a cruel death. Why was it ? The
sacrifices were one, Man had sinned : " the wages of sin is
death : " ^ " without shedding of blood there is no remis-
sion : " ^ " thus it behooved Christ to suffer : " ^ and He, " his
own self bare our sins in his own body on the tree."^
The first deaths in the world were of animals ; innocent
animals slain by God himself, or according to his directions ;
slain in consequence of man's sin, and for man's benefit.
They were the lambs offered in sacrifice, with whose skins
God clothed Adam and Eve. Could they have looked on
those sacrifices without being deeply moved on account of
their sin?
^ Rom. vi. 23. ^ Luke xxiv. 46.
' Heb. ix. 22 ; Lev. xvii. 11. * 1 Peter ii, xxiv.
CHAPTER XVII.
FIRST PERSECUTION — FIRST MARTYR — FIRST MURDER —
BURIALS — FIRST DEATH PENALTY.
6 6 /^ AIN was very wroth, and his countenance fell."^ In
Vy stead of seeking mercy, he dared to be angry with
God ; and to dispute his right to dictate how a sinner should
come unto Him. The Lord bore with liim ; and " said unto
Cain, Why art thou wroth? and why is thy countenance fallen?
If thou doest well shalt thou not be accepted ? " What won-
derful forbearance ! what amazing condescension on the part
of the great, the holy God, toward a rebel defying him ! In-
stead of submitting to God, and seeking instruction from Abel,
" Cain talked with Abel, his brother.'^ It was the first con-
troversy, the first persecution for religious opinion. In his
hatred of the truth, Cain, unable to strike down the Almighty,
rose up against the child of God, " against Abel his brother,
and slew him." " And wherefore slew he him ? Because his
own works were evil, and his brother's righteous."^ The
wrath of the serpent, as has been the case often since, was
thus instrumental in sending a redeemed soul the quicker to
glory. The first of the seed of the promise died a martyr
to his faith and as a witness for salvation by an atoning
sacrifice ; for it is expressly stated, that Abel " being dead
yet speaketh." ^ Since the death of Abel how many have
been compelled to sufi'er and lay down their lives on account
of their faith.
Poor Adam and Eve! their first born, their "gotten,'^
their noble, manly son, is a murderer ; and what is worse,
' Gen. iv. 5. ^ 1 John. iii. 12. » Heb. xi. 4.
(62)
• FIEST MUEDER. 63
is of the seed of the Serpent ; is rejected of God. Their
second, their lovely Abel, is murdered because he bears the
image of God, Wliat multiplied sorrows ! far greater than
the loss of Eden. What fruits from merely eating an apple !
Was that all ? Is any si?i little f " Sin, when it is finished,
bringeth forth death : "^ and •' the wages of sin are death." ^
We have no account of the manner of Abel's burial. The
first burial of which we have an account is that of Sarah, in
the Cave of Machpelah, wdiich was bought for a burial place
by Abraham.^ A favorite mode of burial with the Jews was
in sepulchers hewn out of the rocks — our Lord was thus
buried. Deborah and Rachel, having died while Jacob w£ts
joui:neying, were buried by him in graves.'' A pillar or
tombstone ^'as placed by Jacob over Rachel's grave for a
memorial of her. Both modes of burial were, doubtless,
used from the beginning.
The punishment of a murderer forms a part of the history
as well as of the law which God has given to us, Cain was
fool enouQ^h to think he could hide his crime even from God.
When " the Lord said unto him, Where is Abel thy brother ? "
he had the audacity to reply, " I know not : am I my broth-
er's keeper ? " The family of our first parents were spared
the additional sorrow of being compelled to put their son
and brother to death as a murderer. The Lord himself be-
came the avenger. The Lord said to Cain, "The voice of thy
brother's blood crieth unto me from the ground. And now
art thou cursed from the earth.'^ A curse passed upon his
occupation, the fruit of which he had brought as an offering.
" When thou tillest the ground, it shall not henceforth yield
unto thee her strength ; a fugitive and a vagabond shalt"
thou be in the earth." Cain knew that his doom was sealed.
In agony he exclaimed, " Thou has driven me out from the
face of the earth ; and from thy face shall I be liid ; and I
shall be a fugitive and a vagabond in the earth ; and it shall
* James l 15, ^ Rom. vi. 23, ' Gen. xxiii. 9. * Gen. xxxy, 8, 19, 20.
64 FIRST THINGS.
come to pass, that every one that findeth me shall slay me.
My punishment is greater than I can bear." It appears tl e
Lord gave him a special mark or token, " lest any finding
Mm should kill him."
It is remarkable that after the flood, when God blessed
Noah and his sons, and gave all things into their hands, and
for the first time gave them permission to eat flesh, saying,
" Every moving thing that liveth shall be meat for you ;
even as the green herb have I given you all things," he
adds : " the blood thereof, shall ye not eat. And surely
your blood of your lives will I require ; at the hand of every
beast will I require it, and at the hand of man ; at the
hand of every man's brother will I require the life of man.
Whoso sheddeth man's blood, by man shall his blood be
shed : for in the image of God made he man." ^ This law
was given to Noah as the second head of the race. Since
then, in all places and in all ages of the world, the murderer
has been pursued with death ; even where there has been no
law, the relatives of the murdered one, or a lawless mob,
have always been constrained to carry God's sentence into
execution. No human law can abrogate the death-penalty
for murder. Woe to the community that attempts it ! For
the people have taken, and always will take the law in their,
own hands : and while the murderer will certainly be slain,
violence and bloodshed will be increasing, until God's law
is again honored.
* Gen. ix. 8-6. •
CHAPTER XYIII.
CAIN — FIRST CITY — POWER OF THE SEED OF THE SERPENT — •
FIRST POLYGAMY.
AFTER " the Lord had set a mark upon Cain, lest any-
finding him should kill him ; Cain went out from the
presence of the Lord and dwelt in the land of Nod, on the
east of Eden."^ The land of Nod was so called from Nad —
a vagabond, which Cain was thenceforth to be. Like all
places, the resort of vagabonds, its population increased
rapidly ; for nearly all of Adam's children were of that
class. Li the childhood of the world, as we have before
noticed, the Lord manifested his presence in many ways.
Cain went away from the place where the Lord was wor-
shiped ; and where He thus revealed himself.
The first city in the world was built by Cain. Yiolence
and fear banded men together, and led them to fortify places
to defend themselves, or from which they could go out to
attack others. The pride of the bloody men called conquer-
ors, also caused them to build the first cities, before and
after the flood, and gave names to them. Cain called his
city after the name of his son Enoch.
It is worthy of remark, that for thousands of years the
seed of the serpent, though under a curse, built the great
cities, furnished the kings of the earth, and had the power
of the world'; while the seed, to whom all blessings of this
life and that to come were promised, had to live by faith ;
as heirs of an inheritance not yet received. Cain, under a
curse, became a ruler and built a city. The first great cities
^ Gen. iv. 16.
5 (65)
66 FIRST THINGS.
after the flood, Babylon, Nineveh, etc.,^ were built by Nim-
rod, the mighty hunter, a mighty one in the earth, although
Nimrod was descended from Ham, who was under a curse ;
and was, with his descendants, to be " a servant of servants,
unto his brethren.'^ ^ The descendants of Esau, who was
hated of God and was to serve Jacob, furnished generations
of dukes ruling cities ; while the descendants of Jacob, the
seed of the promise, from whom kings were to be born, were
in slavery in Egypt. There was some truth in the assertion
of the Devil, while tempting our Lord, when he said, " All
the power of the kingdoms of the world is delivered unto
me ; " but he lied when he added, " And to whomsoever I
will I give it."^ Pilate boasted to our Lord, " Knowest thou
not that I have power to crucify thee ? " Jesus answered,
" Thou couldest have no power against me, except it were
given thee from above."* Pharaoh, while holding the chosen
people in slavery, is told by the Lord, " Even for this pur-
pose have I raised thee up, that I might shew my power in
thee."^ Happy are we that we know and can say to our
Father in heaven, " Thine is the kingdom and the power."
How long Cain lived w'e are not told. As the ground
was not henceforth to yield her strength to him, like a vaga-
bond he lived on others. According to Josephus, " He did
not accept of his punishment in order to amendment, but to
increase his wickedness ; for he only aimed to procure every
thing that was for his own bodily pleasure, though it obliged
him to be injurious to his neighbors. He augmented his
household substance with much wealth by rapine and vio-
lence ; he excited his acquaintance to procure pleasure and
spoils by robbery ; and became a great leader of men into
wicked courses. He also introduced a change in that way
of simplicity wherein men lived before, and was the author
of measures and weights. And whereas they lived inno-
^ Gen. X. 8, 10, 11. ^ Gen. ix. 25. ^ Luke iv. G.
* John xix. 10. *Exod. ix. 16; Eom, ix. 17.
CAIN. 67
cently and generously while they knew nothing of such arts,
he changed the world into cunning and craftiness. He first
of all set boundaries about lands ; he built a city and forti-
fied it with walls, and he compelled his family to come to-
gether to it." An old Jewish tradition represents him as
having at last become insane, in which state he wandered
about more like a wild beast than a man. As in those days
men lived nearly a thousand years, Cain doubtless had many
descendants. Several of them became celebrated, as we
shall see hereafter, for their inventions.
Lamech, one of these descendants, is the first who is men-
tioned as having taken unto him two wives. The changing
of God's plan of marriage, and introducing polygamy and
all its evils in its place, was a fit invention for a descend-
ant of Cain. The natural fruits of polygamy we have al-
ready noticed.
CHAPTER XIX.
FIRST INVENTIONS — FIEST MUSICIANS — FIRST ARTIFICERS —
EARLY KNOWLEDGE OF THE ARTS.
THE history of inventions is nearly coeval witli the ex-
istence of man, and forms a very important part of the
history of the world ; as the Disposer of events has often
produced great changes in the world by communicating the
knowledge of " an invention" at a time suited to the accom-
plishment of His purpose. We are too apt to lose sight of
God, and of his special providence, in these so-called inven-
tions} We have also little idea of the vast provision which
the beneficent Creator has made to supply our wants. Think,
for instance, of the immense stores of iron, and also of coal,
the use of which has only lately been discovered. See one
little island, Great Britain, producing about eighty millions
of tons of coal yearly ; yielding, besides many other things,
almost enough coal and iron to form an island of respectable
size every year ! Think again of the vast hidden power put
in matter for the use of man ; that a pint of water and a
pound of coal originate a power and sustain a motion which
would soon wear out the human system of the strongest man ;
and that with the aid of a little water and coal and iron, the
labor of one individual is made equal to that of the combined
efforts of two hundred and twenty-six persons. A steam
engine of one hundred horse power is estimated as equal to
^ Many thoughts were gathered for this chapter, making it almost a com-
pilation from an interesting and able work by Eev. John Blakely, entitled
" The Theology of Inventions, or Manifestations of the Deity in the Works
of Art."
(68)
FIRST INVENTIONS. 69
the strength of eight hundred and eighty men ; and the ma-
chinery of Great Britain, as doing the work of five hundred
millions of men. What a vast amount of human toil is thus
mitigated, and of human misery alleviated ! What a won-
derful provision to increase our comforts we find laid up in
but a small part of the earth with larger supplies found
elsewhere.
When God blessed Adam and Eve in Eden, He gave them
dominion over all creatures moving upon the earth ; and told
them "to replenish the earth and subdue it."^ He did the
same to Noah and his sons immediately after the flood, say-
ing, " into your hand are they delivered." ' The animal and
vegetable and mineral kingdoms were thus placed at man's
disposal. We go into a factory, and are content with being
a little surprised at the sight of complicated machinery ; and
with knowing that it is a cotton, w^oollen, or some other fac-
tory. We are too often like the rustic, who can see nothing
to admire in nature's beauty.
" The primrose by the river's brim
A yellow primrose is to him,
And it is nothing more."
But examine tlie machinery, and we find the bowels of
the earth have contributed iron or brass ; the surface of it
has furnished wood or cotton and other vegetable products ]
while the animal kingdom has furnished the leather, the bone,
the hair, the grease, etc. These materials have no natural
relation, no chemical affinities ; but drawn from three king-
doms, they are by a mechanical combination made to assume
a new form, and to accomplish a new purpose for man's use
and benefit. Then turn to the man who is called "' the in-
ventor ;" we have already noticed what a wonderful piece of
mechanism he is : prepared to subdue the world ; not able
to create ; yet with powers of body and of mind able to
^ Genesis i. 28. « Genesis ix. 2.
•70 FIRST THINGS.
make every thing else tributary to liis wants and to his pleas-
ure. The hand alone of the artisan is a combination of
wonders : constructed to seize and handle bodies of every
form and shape ; and with sensibilities so acute and so va-
ried that a touch can almost determine their nature ; whether
hard or soft, rough or smooth, fine or coarse, heavy or lig^nt,
hot or cold.
The earth being created as the theatre of redemption, it
was prepared accordingly by the Creator and Kedeemer :
not only with all things necessary for man while upright in
Eden, but also with those things which he so much needs in
his fallen estate. The Fall was foreknown, and provision
was made accordingly ; not only for the redemption of man,
but for his wants while that redemption was being accom-
plished. Materials were created with certain qualities and
powers, all fixed in the mind and in the purpose of God.
The knowledge how to use those materials has been imparted
from time to time, by Him who " teacheth man knowledge,"
in such measure only, and at such times as He had determined
before they were created. We need not be surprised, there-
fore, that the uses of some things apparently the most simple,
and of powers which have existed since creation, have been
only lately discovered. God had so willed it. The art of
navigation was known to the ancients ; but for thousands of
years they had to keep near shore and make short voyages,
until a few centuries since, when the use of the mariner's
compass was discovered, and a way across the oceans opened.
Yet the polarity of the magnet existed from creation ; and
iron was known shortly after the fall.^ The steam engine in
its elementary principles has also existed since the beginning.
The water, the fire, and the minerals, with the powers con-
tained in them, were prepared and ready for use. Water
could always be converted into steam ; and for thousands of
years steam had shown its power in raising the lid of the
* Genesis iv. 22.
FIRST INVENTIONS. 71
teakettle, before the thought how to use that power was car-
ried successfully into execution. The telegraph simply ap-
plies a power which electricity has always possessed. The
art of printing was imparted about the time of the Reforma-
tion, to assist in spreading the kingdom of God. And it is a
gratifying fact that the Bible was the first work printed with
movable metal types. The Book containing God's message
to man, which Popery had kept as a se'aled volume for nearly
a thousand years, was thus brought within the reach of all.
No wonder that the sudden lowness of the price, and the
multiplicity and uniformity of the copies, caused the first
seller of them to fly for his life to avoid being executed for
witchcraft.
The knowledge of some of the greatest inventions has been
imparted in our day, just as the time foretold in prophecy of
the fall of the man of sin and of the false prophet is at hand,
when the twelve hundred and sixty years spoken of are ex-
piring, when Popery and Mohammedism are to come to an
end,^ and the " everlasting Gospel is to be preached to every
nation and tongue."^ Daniel was told that at the " time of
the end, many shall run to and fro, and knowledge shall be
increased,"^ We are now seeing these great prophecies
being fulfilled. The world has been opened to the Gospel,
and its uttermost parts are brought near, through the knowl-
edge given to man enabling him to subdue it.
What tools Adam had in Paradise we do not know. Al-
though thorns and thistles were not yet, as the ground was
not yet cursed,'^ still he would have needed some tools to
" dress the garden and to keep it ;" as well as to " subdue
the earth." The first invention recorded is that of making
clothes after the Fall. " They sewed fig leaves together and
made themselves aprons.'' ^ God, however, provided a. bet-
ter material and condescended to teach them how to use it,
* Kev. xii. 6 ; xiii. 5 ; Dan. xii, 7. '^ Rev. xiv. 6, 8.
^ Dau. xii. 4. * Gen. iii. 18. " Gen. iii. T.
72 FIEST THINGS.
for " unto Adam and to his wife did the Lord God make
coats of skins and clothed them."^ " Cain was a tiller of the
ground," and necessarily must have had some implements to
do it with. Abel, when he " brought of the firstlings of his
flock and of the fat thereof," ^ as an offering unto the Lord,^
must have used tools in preparing his sacrifice. Cain aftor-
ward builded a city,^ The preparation of the materials to
build a city, the erectfon of buildings, and the necessary oc-
cupation and wants of those living in cities, at once convey
the idea of an advanced stage in knowledge of tools, of ma-
chinery, and of the arts, even in that early age of the world.
It is a ' truism, incidental, however, to fallen nature only,
that " Necessity is the mother of invention." Had man not
sinned, all his powers, created, as they were perfect, would
have been constantly and joyfully alive and active with im-
mortal energy. A blight, part of the " dying death," passed
upon those powers at the Fall ; and it has required neces-
sity, or the grace of God, to keep them alive. It is a curious
fact, that the first inventions spoken of were after man had
sinned ; and were to supply wants occasioned by sin : and
also that the first inventors spoken of were of the descend-
ants of Cain, and of the " seed of the serpent."
In inventions, reason shows its superiority over animal
instincts ; the latter making no progress.
" The winged inhabitants of Paradise
Wove their first nests as curiously and well
As the wood minstrels of our evil day."
Yet fallen man has doubtless been compelled to look to
inferior creatures and receive suggestions from them. Using
his reason, he will
" The art of building from the bee receive.
Learn of the mole to plow ; the worm to weave ;
Learn of the little nautilus to sail.
Spread the thin oar, and catch the driving gale." — Pope.
> Gen iii. 21. ^ Gen. iv. 4. ^ Gen. iv. 11.
IHOM A PAINTING lOUNfj I M /^ TOMB At THtBhS.
LCYPllAN r.NrtRlVMNlVin-n- (Kmm a Pamling m the hriUsh Mi.iriouK. )
EnAicoU a. Co. Li Lb, NY.
FIEST INVENTIONS. 73
However, in this, as in all other ways of obtaining knowl-
edge, man is dependent upon God. He claims not only to
have created the iron and the coal, but also the artificer.
Speaking to His Church, He says : " Behold, I have created
the smith that bloweth the coals in the fire, and that bring-
eth forth an instrument for his work ; and I have created
the waster to destroy."^ The iron, the smith, the weapon
formed, and the waster, are all His. He therefore can well
add, " No weapon that is formed against thee shall prosper.''^
In the brief history of Cain and his descendants we have
a record of several inventors and inventions, showing a great
knowledge of the arts in the first days of the world ; and
also that the luxuries of life, such as musical instruments,
etc., were early introduced. Jabal " was the father of such
as dwell in tents, and of such as have cattle."^ To be a
father implies an originator or inventor. Abel had kept
sheep ; but Jabal must have introduced some system in rear-
ing and taking care of cattle, and also tents and tentmaking.
Paul nearly four thousand years after worked as a tentmaker,
being of that craft.'^ Jubal, a brother of Jabal, is recorded
as being " the father of all such as handle the harp and the
organ." ^ Both stringed and wind instruments are here
spoken of ; and also a father or teacher of musical composi-
tion and mechanical harmony. From Jubal probably comes
the word jubilee, first celebrated with the sound of the trum-
pet. The Psalmist, when calling upon all things that hath
breath to praise the Lord, adds : " Praise him with stringed
instruments and organs.'' ^ The seed of Cain first invented
musical instruments ; though afterward used to assist in
praising the Lord, it is a sad fact that the seed of the Ser-
pent now often uses them, even in the Lord's house, for the
very purpose of robbing Him of his praise.
The next verse of the narrative shows us a much more
^ Isaiah liy. 16. ^ Gen. iv. 20. ^ Gen. iv. 21.
^ Isaiah liv. IT. * Acts xviii. 3. ° Ps. cl. 4.
74 FIESTTHINGS.
extensive knowledge of the arts and sciences. Tubal- Cain, a
member of the same family, was " an instriicter of every arti-
ficer in brass and iron." ^ He is supposed to be the Yulcan
of the ancients, one of their fictitious deities often mentioned.
It is the same name, simply shortened ; and the occupations
of both were the same. To be a teacher of every artificer,
he must have had a thorough knowledge of ores and of
metals ; of the art of smelting and of mixing them ; and of
moulding or beating them into the required form : and also
a considerable acquaintance with chemistry. By tradition,
Vulcan was celebrated as a manufacturer of arms and ar-
mor. As Tubal-Cain was a descendant of Cain, living among
his followers, and the earth becoming filled with violence,
we may well suppose that he introduced their manufacture
and excelled in making them.
A Jewish tradition ascribes to Naamah, sister of Tubal-
Cain, the introduction of ornaments in female dress. It is
not improbable tliat Cain's city was the Paris of the world,
and that his children led the fashions, for it appears they
drew all the world after them.
"We may infer from the simple directions given when the
ark was built, that many things in relation to ship-building
were then already known. The cities built shortly after the
flood show that the arts had not been lost, but that the
knowledge of them must have been preserved by those in
the ark. The ruins of those cities surprise us with their
magnitude and grandeur. The huge stones used in their
buildings, the immense statues and columns of their temples,
as also the pyramids, etc., show that they were accustomed
to mammoth works.
In the account of the preparation of the materials for the
tabernacle, we have a comprehensive exposition of the arts
in almost every department. " There was the hewing, saw-
ing, planing, joining, carving and gilding of wood. There
* Genesis iv. 22.
FIRST INVENTIONS. 75
was the melting, casting, beating, boring, and engraving of
metals. There was the spinning, weaving, dyeing, bleaching,
sewina", and ernbroiderins: of fabrics : the tannins: and col-
oring of skins. There was work in gold, silver, and brass ;
in blue, purple, and scarlet ; in fine linen and. in goats' hair.
Tiiere was the polishing and engraving of precious stones,"
etc., etc. The Lord not only gave special directions how
the tabernacle and every thing pertaining to it were to be
made, but He also prepared and called the workmen : " The
Lord spake unto Moses, saying. See, I have called by name
Bezaleel, the son of Uri, the son of Hur, of the tribe of Ju-
dah ; and I have filled him with the Spirit of God, in wis-
dom, and in understanding, and in knowledge, and in all
manner of workmanship." " And I, behold, I have given
with him Aholiab, the son of Ahisamach, of the tribe of Dan :
and in the hearts of all that are wise hearted I have put wis-
dom, that they may make all that I have commanded thee." ^
When we remember that all this was over three thousand
years ago, and that nearly three thousand years before that
there were teachers of the arts and of music in the family
of Cain, we must acknowledge that in the early days of the
world they knew more than we are apt to give them credit
for. Li fact the ancients were acquainted with arts which
are now lost. Let us also bear in mind that a knowledge
of the arts and civilization, have no power in themselves to
purify the heart or to improve society. The descendants of
Cain, while making the greatest progress in worldly knowl-
edge, were growing greater monsters in crime. Education,
without Christianity, makes men more powerful and more
cunning in carrying out their evil designs, and therefore
makes them more dangerous.
* Exodus xxxi. 2, 6.
CHAPTEE XX.
THE CHURCH — ITS PRESERVATION A CONSTANT MIRACLE.
LET US now turn to watch the progress of that perpetual
wonder in the world, the Church : in which, above all
other things, the Creator has always taken the greatest in-
terest ; as a theatre for which He created the world ; that by
it He might make known his manifold wisdom to principali-
ties and powers in heavenly places.^ The progress, the very
existence of that church in the world, is a wonder. Its pres-
ervation is a perpetual miracle : indeed, every soul added to
it is such ; for that soul is " born again ;" ^ is raised from
the dead ;" ^ and is a " new creation," ^ in which has been
displayed " a working of the mighty power, of the exceeding
greatness of the power" ^ of the Almighty.
In looking back through the six thousand years of the
world's history, we see a litle band, like a few straggling
sheep journeying through a wilderness filled with wolves,
weak, defenseless, tottering, surrounded by enemies, and at
times so few in number that they are to be found only in a
single family. It is the seed of the promise, reduced just
before tlie flood to part of a family of eight persons, while
the seed of the serpent numbered perhaps a thousand mil-
lions. Out of tlie successive generations on the earth, they
are for twenty-three hundred years to be found only in a
single line from father to son ; and then for seventeen hun-
dred years after, they count only a few in a single nation,
out of the many nations of the world.^ They were a very
^ Eph. iii. 9. > ^ Eph. ii. 1. ^ Eph. i. 19.
= John i. 13; iii. 3. * Eph. ii. 10; 2 Cor. v. IT. ' Rom. ix. 6; xi. 3.
(76)
THE CHURCH. 77
*' little flock" ^ in the time of our Saviour. And eacli mem-
ber of that flock is so weak, so prone to sin and death, as to
be continually forced to cry out, " wretched man that I
am ! who shall deliver me from the body of this death ?" ^
and yet so strong in the Lord as to be able at the same time
to shout, " I thank God, which giveth us the victory, through
Jesus Christ our Lord." ^
We have seen the first member added to this flock mur-
dered for his faith by his own brother. The record, four
thousand years afterwards, in speaking of the faith and trials
of some of the members of this flock, as during that long pe-
riod it had been journeying through the world, hated by all
men, says : "" others were tortured not accepting deliverance ;
that they might obtain a better resurrection : and others had
trial, of cruel mockings and scourgings, yea, moreover of
bonds and imprisonments : they were stoned, they were sawn
asunder, were tempted, were slain with the sword : they
wandered about in sheepskins and goatskins ; being desti-
tute, afflicted, tormented (of whom the world was not wor-
thy) : they wandered in deserts," ^ etc., etc. Read the ex-
perience of Paul before he was put to death ; what he calls
" light affliction, being but for a moment, and working for
him a far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory."
" We are troubled on every side, perplexed, persecuted, cast
down, alway delivered unto death for Jesus' sake ; in stripes
above measure, in prisons frequent, in deaths oft. Of the
Jews five times received I forty stripes save one. Thrice
was I beaten with rods, once was I stoned," ^ etc., etc. We
see from time to time the most powerful monarchs of the
greatest empires of the world trying to annihilate them
with fire and sword ; and if possible to blot out their
very name from the earth. We see Satan and his angels,
with increasing malignity, using all their arts to tempt, to
^ Luke xii. 32. ^ Heb. xi. 35, 36.
'^ Eom. vii. 24, 25 ; 1 Cor. xv. 61. ■*-2 Cor. iv. 8, 9, 11 ; xi. 23
78 FIRST THINGS.
corrupt and destroy them ; at times to effect his purpose,
getting " his children" ^ in possession of the high places of
the visible church, and even entering himself into some of its
members,^ as he did when Jesus was betrayed. We see the
visible church procuring the death of the Shepherd of this
flock, then stoning Stephen under pretence of blasphemy ; ^
and then causing a great persecution ; the high priest him-
self for this purpose giving letters to a man " breathing out
threatenings and slaughter against the disciples of the
Lord."*
We see antichrist in the church itself, having obtained
power over the kingdoms of the world twelve hundred and
sixty years, endeavoring to destroy the followers of the Lord
Jesus wherever they could be found, by massacres, by wars,
and by the inquisition. Truly, long since would the church
have disappeared from the earth, and all knowledge of God
been banished from it, and the world have become a hell, had
not G-od in his sovereignty and his mercy determined other-
wise. As ten righteous men would have saved Sodom,^ so
the presence of the Church of Jesus Christ, " the salt of the
earth," ^ now saves the world. When the last member of it
is gathered in, the world will be burned up.
We see all this malice of the seed of the serpent overruled
and even made subservient to God's purposes of saving and
extending his church. " Herod and Pontius Pilate, with the
Gentiles and the people of Israel, were gathered together
against the Lord and against his Christ, for to do what-
soever God's hand and counsel determined before to be
done." ^
We see the provision made for the salvation of that
church by the Saviour giving himself for her : and then giv-
ing her His Word, the ministry, and the sacraments for her
edification. We see that there always has been but one true
* John viii. 44. ^ Luke xxii. 3. ^ Acts vi. 13. * Acts ix. 1.
* Gen. xviii. 32. ^ Matt. v. 13. * Acts iv. 26, 28; ii. 23; viH. 4.
THE CHURCH. 79
cliurch, and but one way of salvation from the beginning ;
and that is by faith in the testimony of God and in the sac-
rifice of the Lord Jesus Christ.
That church has always had a government and a form of
worship which separated it from the world ; making it a
visible church. The members of it in all ages have been
known as the Lord's people ; and have " called themselves
by the name of the Lord." ^ They now call themselves after
His name, Christians.^ The true members of that church —
" for they are not all Israel which are of Israel" ^ — are called
" the chosen," " the elect," " the sons of God ;" " the sheep for
whom the Shepherd laid down his life,"^ and whom He leads
through the wilderness " like a flock," ^ etc., etc. While Cain
and the seed of the serpent have always fled from the face
of the Lord, the church has always enjoyed the special mani-
festations of His presence : sometimes visibly, as in the cloud
in the wilderness, and when " God was manifest in the
flesh." ^ He has said, " Where two or three are gathered to-
gether in my name, there am I in the midst of them," ^ " Lo,
I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world." ^
After the ascension of our Lord, the Holy Ghost the promised
Comforter, came to abide with the flock for ever.^ And since
the day of Pentecost the Church has enjoyed His presence
and His teachings. Every true member of it is a " temple
of the Holy Ghost," ^'^ and has angels ministering to him or
her : for the angels are " sent forth to minister for them who
shall be heirs of salvation." ^^ Even heaven was created for
them : for at the judgment " the King shall say unto them,
Come ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared
for you from the foundation of the world." ^^
^ Gen. iv, 26, margin. * Ps. Ixxviii. 62. ® Jolm xiv. 16, 26.
= Acts xi. 26. ° 1 Tim. iii. 16. " 1 Cor. iii. 16 ; vi. 19.
'^ Rom. ix. 6. ' Matt, xviii. 20. " Heb. i. 14,
* John X. 15. ^ Matt xxviii. 20. " Matt. xxv. 34.
80 FIRST THINGS.
Happy flock! amid all your trials, temptations, and suffer-
ings, while
" Marching through Immanuers ground,
To fairer worlds on high,"
ye may well " rejoice, and be exceeding glad ; and leap for
joy, when men shall hate you, and revile you, and persecute
you, for the son of man's sake." ^ " Fear not, little flock, for
it is your Father's good pleasure to give you the kingdom." ^
" Weak as you are, you shall not faint.
Or, fainting, shall not die ;
Jesus, the strength of every saint.
Will aid you from on high."
" All things work together for your good." ^ Because you
are "children of God,thenheirs:"^ "all things are yours;
and ye are Christ's ; and Christ is God's ;" ^ The Creator is
your Redeemer and Saviour. You may well exclaim, " If
God be for us, who can be against us ? Who shall lay any
thing to the charge of God's elect ?" ^
» Matt. V. 12 ; Luke vi. 23. ^ Rom. viii. 28. ^ 1 Cor. iii. 22.
' Luke xii. 32 * Rom. viii. 11. ^ Rom. viii 31, 33.
CHAPTER XXI.
FIRST GATHERING OF THE CHURCH — YISIBLB CHURCH, CHIL-
DREJ^ AND SLAVES MEMBERS — FIRST PUBLIC WORSHIP
FIRST REVIVAL OF RELIGION — FIRST PRAYER MEETING.
'E have seen the first step in gathering the Church ;
" God called unto Adam" while he was trying to flee
from him. He also called Abraham : " by faith Abraham,
when he was called to go out into a place which he should
after receive for an inheritance, obeyed." ^ He called and
converted Paul, when full of hatred he was seeking to de-
stroy the Church." The Scripture says, " Whom He did pre-
destinate, them He also called." ^ The Gospel is now the
call of God. The next step was the commencement of reve-
lation, the promise of the great Deliverer ; the Seed of the
woman which was to bruise the head of the serpent ; ^ prom-
ises, prophecies, and commandments, being afterwards added
from time to time until the word of God was complete ; and
a curse recorded against any man who should add to it.^
Then came public worship ; and, as an act of faith, the offer-
ing of a lamb in sacrifice : and a lamb was slain continually
in the Church of God from the time of AbeFs sacrifice for
the space of four thousand years ; until He who was " the
Lamb slain from the foundation of the world," ^ " a lamb with-
out blemish and without spot ; who verily was foreordained
before the foundation of the world," ^ was offered on Calvary.
Since then, the Lord's supper commemorates the same sacri-
fice ; and is, by way " of remembrance," " to show the Lord's
^ Hpb. xi. 8. 2 ^(j^g ^^ ^ s £qj^_ ^j-j 3q . j g_ 4 (jgjj i5-^_ ^g^
^ Eev. xxii. 18. « Rev. xiii. 8. » 1 Peter i. 19.
6 (81)
82 ' FIRSTTHINGS."
death till he come." ^ The reading of the word of God,
preaching, prayer, and praise, have also always formed part
of public worship.
The visible church, according to God's own appointment,
has always embraced not only his people, but their house-
holds : their children and their slaves. God said unto Abra-
ham " Thou shalt keep my covenant, thou, and thy seed after
thee in their generations." ^ " He that is born in thy house,
or bought with thy money must needs be circumcised."^
And he that is not, " that soul shall be cut off from his peo-
ple ; he hath broken my covenant." ^ " The Lord said unto
Moses and Aaron, this is the ordinance of the passover :
There shall no stranger eat thereof : but every man's servant
that is bought for money, when thou hast circumcised him,
then shall he eat thereof. A foreigner and a hired servant
shall not eat thereof."^ When the Jews were separated
from other nations, as the visible church of God, the stranger
that wished to unite with them could do so. For circumcis-
ion and the feast of the Passover there was " one ordinance
both for the stranger and for him that was born in the
land :" ^ as now, the stranger born out of the visible church
may be baptized and partake of the Lord's Supper. Li all
generations the covenant of the Lord has been, " I will be a
God unto thee, and to thy seed after thee." ^ The children
of our first parents were therefore named in faith, and were
trained to make offerin2:s to God. God's covenant with
Abraham and his descendants brought a whole nation into the
communion of the visible church, and made them his peculiar
people. Throughout the Old and New Testaments they were
directed to teach their children the reason for the sacra-
ments ; as showing God's wonderful works in saving his peo-
ple.^ God's statutes and commandments were " to them,
» 1 Cor. XI. 25. ^ Gen. xvii. 9. ^ Gen. xvii. 12, 13. * Gen. xvii. 14.
^ Exod. xii. 44, 45. ^ Num. ix. 14 ; Exod. xii. 48.
' Gen. xvii. 1 ; Acts ii. 30 ; 1 Cor. vii. 14. ^ Ex. xiii. 8, 14 ; Deut. iv. 9.
FIESTPUBLIC WOESHIP. 83
their sons, and tlieir sons' sons :" and tliey were to " teach,
them to their children diligently ;" V and to "bring up their
children in the nurture and admonition of the Lord :'' ^ not
to it, but as already in it. Thus we find Abraham, Jacob,
Joshua, etc., circumcising, and consecrating their households ;
likewise, the jailer at Philippi " was baptized, and all his
straightway;"^ also Lydia' and her household,^ and the
" household of Stephanas." ^
In all ages God has required from his people a public rec-
ognition of tlie covenant made with them and their seed.
The Jewish child was in early infancy to be publicly brought
into covenant with the visible churcli by the sacrament of
circumcision ; as the child of the Christian is now by bap-
tism. If he forebore to join in the celebration of the Pass-
over feast when grown, he was to be " cut off from among his
people." '^
The first public worship, and the first revival of religion
mentioned, was at the birth of Enos, the son of Seth, born
when Adam was two hundred and thirty-five years old.
" Then began men to call upon the name of the Lokd." ^ In
the margin it reads " men began to call themselves by the
name of the Lord." They acknowledged the Lord as their
God ; and called themselves, and were called by Him, his
people. They felt their dependence on God ; and Seth
named his son accordingly, Enosh, man m loeakness. Indi-
vidually, Adam, Abel, and Seth, had before this called upon
the Lord with their sacrifices. Adam had begotten sons and
daughters ;' they also had been multiplying ; and as they
grew up had forsaken the worship and the face of the Lord.
When Enos of the third generation was born, there appears
to have been the first public gathering of the visible church.
It could have consisted only of Adam, Eve, and such of their
younger children as they could control, and Seth and his
^ Deut. vi. 2, Y. ^ Eph. vi. 4. ^ Acts xri. 33. * Acts xvi. 15.
^ 1 Cor. i. 16. ^ Num. ix. 13. ' Gen. iv. 26.
84 FIE ST THINGS.
family. Possibly some of Adam's other children may have
joined them ; but from the record it is doubtful : if they
did, they could not have continued with them, as it appears
the whole world, excepting those named in the one line of
father to son, became corrupt.
They began to " call upon the name of the Lord ;" it was
the beginning of pra3^er-meetings. The names which the
Lord has assumed, such as, the Almighty, the Lord thy God,
the Father, Jesus, the Saviour, the Comforter, the God of
Jacob, the Hearer of Prayer, etc., etc., not only make known
to us His nature, attributes, and covenant relationship with
His people, but they are also the foundation of their prayers.
In all ages the Lord's people have called upon His name :
relying upon His promises, that when they gather together
in His name, " He will be in the midst of them," ^ and " that
whatsoever they ask in His name, He will do it." ^
* Matt, xviii. 20. * John xiv. 13, 14.
CHAPTER XXII.
FIRST CONSECRATION OP PROPERTY — FIRST PROPHETS — FIRST
TRANSLATION OF THE BODY — FIRST PREACHERS.
SHE giving or consecration of property to the Lord,
was connected with and was part of the first act of
worship, Cain, " a tiller of the ground, brought of the fruit
of the ground an offering unto the Lord." Abel, a keeper of
sheep, '' brought of the firstlings of his flock and of the fat
thereof." The sacrifices were of their most valuable prop-
erty. How early the custom of devoting one tenth to the
Lord was introduced we cannot tell. Abraham " gave tithes
of all" to Melchizedek, " the priest of the most high Grod," ^
more than four hundred years before the Lord claimed the first
born " among the children of Israel, both of man or beast,"
saying : "It is mine:"^ beside demanding a tenth "of the pro-
duce of the land, of the fruit of the tree, of the herd and of the
flock." ^ Jacob vowed a vow, saying, " If God will be with
me," etc., " of all that thou shalt give me I will surely give the
tenth unto thee." ^ The church in the time of the Jews, in
addition to the tenth, were directed to give the first fleece and
the first fruits of the land ; ^ and also to offer many particu-
lar sacrifices beside their free-will offerings.^ They were
constantly to remember the Levites, as the Lord's ministers
who had no portion in the land ; and also to consider the
poor. Three times each year, at their great feasts, every
male was to appear before the Lord in the appointed place?
and the charge to them was, " They shall not appear before
' Gen. xiv. 18, 20. ^ Levit. xxvii. 30, 32. ^ Deut. xviii. 4.
^ Exod. xiii. 2. " Gen. xxviii. 20, 22. ^ Ezra iii. 5.
(85)
86 FIRST THINGS.
the Lord empty : every man shall give as he is able, accord-
ing to the blessing of the Lord thy God which he hath given
thee." ^ One of the first acts recorded of the church after
the ascension of Christ, was selling their possessions and
laying the proceeds down at the apostles' feet.^ The com-
mand of the Lord now is, " Upon the first day of the week
let every one of you lay by him in store, as God hath pros-
pered him,*' ^ for the Lord's use : an oifering willingly made
by the renewed heart of the redeemed, whose first cry con-
strained by a Saviour's love is, " Lord what wilt thou have
me to do ?" ""
Prophesying was early in the church. In fact, every be-
liever in the first promise was a living witness, by his life
and his manner of worship, for a Saviour to come. " For
the testimony of Jesus is the spirit of prophecy." ^ Special
revelations, however, were made to the church, from time to
time, giving clearer views of God's sovereignty and of his
purposes. Prophets were raised up to comfort the church
and increase her faith ; and, as we shall see hereafter, fore-
telling the destruction of the powerful empires of this world,
as well as that of all sinners in the world to come. The first
specially mentioned as a prophet is Enoch, born in the seventh
generation, in the year 622. He prophesied of " the coming
of the Lord with ten thousand of his saints, to execute judg-
ment upon all, and to convince all that are ungodly among
them of all their ungodly deeds, and of all their hard speeches
which they have spoken against him."*^ He doubtless re-
ferred to the coming flood, as well as to the last great day.
Enoch not only thus prophesied of the judgment, and that
" them also which sleep in Jesus will God bring with him ;'"'
but he was himself also a witness to the resurrection of the
body : for aft(3r walking with God till he was three hundred
and sixty-five years old, when he had lived only about one
» Deut. xYi. 16. 2 Acts ii. 45, iv. 35. " 1 Cor. xvi. 2. ^ Acts ix. 6.
^ Rev. xix. 10. « Jude 16. » 1 Thess. iv. 14.
FIRST PREACHERS. 87
third of the usual length of men's lives in those days, " by
faith Enoch was translated that lie should not see death ; and
was not found, because God had translated him : for before
his translation he had this testimony, that he pleased God." ^
There was a proof of the glorious change to take place in
the bodies of believers in each important era of the Church ;
Enoch in the patriarchal, Elijah in the Jewish or prophetical,
and the Saviour and the bodies of the saints raised after his
resurrection, in the Gospel era.
Preaching has always been in the Church. The patriarchs
were not only the priests, elders, and rulers in the church,
but were the teachers of the children.^ In the Jewish church,
in lieu of the first born sons, the Lord took the tribe of Levi,
and the Levites were specially consecrated to the Lord's
service. Part of their duty was to preach ; they were " to
teach Jacob God's judgments, and Israel his law :" ^ " they
taught all Israel :" ^ " they read in the book in the law of
God distinctly, and gave the sense, and caused them to un-
derstand the reading." ^ We wonder when we think that
for four thousand years the knowledge of the true God, and
of the way of salvation by faith, was confined to the line of
a single family and to a single nation : that thousands of
millions of men, in successive generations, had died without
God and without hope, before the injunction was given to
the Church, " Go ye into all the world, and preach the Gos-
pel to every creature." ^ We can only say, " Even so. Father :
for so it seemed good in thy sight." ^ Yet when we consider
men's hatred to God, to the Gospel, and to those who preach
it, we are the more surprised that it is sent to them at all.
Enoch must have preached when he prophecied. Noah is
expressly spoken of, as " a preacher of righteousness." ^ His
preaching, however, was only a constant " savour of death
^ Heb. xi. 5. ^ Deut. xxxiii. 10. * IS'eh, viii, 8.
^ Gen. xvii, 23; xviii. 19. * 2 Chron. xxxr, 3, ^ Mark xvi. 15.
T Matt. xi. 26. ^2 Peter ii. 5 ; 1 Peter iii. 19, 20.
88 FIRST THINGS.
unto death ;" ^ for it is worthy of notice that he preached
and warned men a hundred and twenty years, while building
the ark, without to our knowledge making a single convert.
In gathering his elect, " it pleased God by the foolishness of
preaching to save them that believe." ^ For " faith cometh
by hearing, and hearing by the word of God." ^ Paul asks,
"How shall they believe in him of whom they have not
heard ? and how shall they hear without a preacher." ^ It is
a fearful fact that the Gospel is also to be preached as a tes-
timony against men ; as it was in the days of Noah, and
when it was preached to Chorazin and Bethsaida ; although,
as then, men will reject it. Our Lord says, " this gospel of
the kingdom shall be preached in all the world for a witness
unto all nations ; and then shall the end come." ^
The Lord's word to Ezekiel, when He sent by him a mes-
sage to the visible church, is remarkable : showing that
the duty of preachers, as " ambassadors for Christ," is sim-
ply from their heart to deliver His message, and leave the
results with Him. The Lord said unto Ezekiel, " Get thee
unto the house of Israel, and speak with my words unto
them. For thou art not sent to a people of a strange speech,
and of an hard language, but to the house of Israel. Surely,
had I sent thee to them, they would have hearkened unto
thee. But the house of Israel ivill not hearlcen unto theeJ^
" Fear them not, neither be dismayed ; all my words that I
shall speak unto thee receive into thine heart, and speak unto
them and tell them. Thus saith the Lord God : whether they
will hear, or whether they will forbear." ^
2 Cor. ii. ]6. ' M Cor. i. 21. ^ Rom. x. 14, 17.
^ Matt xxiv. 14. ^ Ezek. iii. 4 to 11.
CHAPTER XXIII.
PIBST LENGTH OF HUMAN LIFE — INCREASE OF POPULATION
AND DECREASE OP THE CHURCH — MIXED MARRIAGES —
FIRST GIANTS — GIGANTIC ANIMALS.
AVERY remarkable feature of the period before the
flo€)d was the extraordinary length of men's lives.
They lived nearly a thousand years. Had men continued to
live that long, the fathers of the men now living might have
conversed with the Saviour when he was on the earth, and
their great-grandfathers could almost have talked with
Adam. We have a record of but a few persons who lived
before the flood, and those in two distinct lines only : that
of some of the descendants of Cain, the age of none of
whom is given, and that of Seth and some of his descend-
ants, probably not the oldest sons, but such as were chosen
to be the seed of the promise and to be the progenitors of
the Lord Jesus Christ.
Adam lived nine hundred and thirty years, equal however
to a longer life, as he never was a child. Methuselah, whose
age is the longest recorded, lived nine hundred and sixty-
nine years. Most of the others lived nearly as long. Noah
was six hundred years old at the time of the flood, and lived
three hundred and fifty years after it, making his age at the
time of his death nine -hundred and fifty years. He was
probably the oldest man that has been in the world since the
flood ; as after it men's lives were gradually shortened, until
Moses, a few generations afterward, was constrained to write,
(89)
90 FIKST THINGS.
" The days of our years are three-score years and ten ; and
if by reason of strength they be four-score years, yet is their
strength labor and sorrow ; for it is soon cut off, and we fly
away."^ However, the life even of Methuselah was only as
a dream or a vapor ; for it is as easy to look back a thou-
sand years as eighty, they are both as yesterday when they
are past. The record, in the fifth chapter of Genesis, of the
lives of the patriarchs before the flood is wonderfully
concise.
The increase of the population of the world before the
flood must have been very rapid. Jacob's descendants in-
creased, while in Egypt, only two or three hundred years, to
millions. What must have been the population of the world,
when men lived nearly a thousand years begetting sons and
daughters !
The church diminished in numbers as the world increased
in population. The patriarchs saw the millions of their
descendants, with one or two exceptions, in one immense,
continuous stream, separating themselves from God, joining
the children of the world, and going to perdition. Methu-
selah, Noah's grandfather, who died the year of the flood,
lived seven hundred and eighty-two years after his son
Lamech was born, and " begat sons and daughters." " Lam.
ech lived after he begat Noah five hundred and ninety-five
years, and begat sons and daughters." Noah must therefore
have had a vast number of brothers and sisters, uncles,
aunts, and cousins, religiously trained ; they, with their child-
ren and their children's children, probably numbered millions
when Noah entered the ark, yet not one of them was saved.
Truly, " they which are the children of the flesh, these are
not the children of God,"^ even although they enjoy the
benefits pertaining to " the adoption, and the glory, and the
covenants, and the service of God, and the promises, and the
fathers, of whom as concerning the flesh Christ came, who is
'Psalm xc. 10. ''Rom. ix. 8.
FIEST GIANTS. 91
over all God blessed for ever. Amen."^ With all these
advantages, how many have perished !
The Bible history gives one reason for the apostacy of the
children of the church. The people, or sons of God, married
with the children of the world, or unbelievers. " The sods
of God saw the daughters of men that they were fair ; and
they took them wives of all which they chose." ^ This led
them to worldliness, to idolatry, and to destruction. Such
marriages have always been forbidden by the Lord. We
have already noticed that, to avoid this, Abraham and Isaac
sought wives for their children from among their relatives ;
and also that the Lord gave a reason to the Jews, when for-
bidding them to let their children contract marriages with
the heathen : — " For they will turn away thy son from fol-
lowing me, that they may serve other gods : so will the an-
ger of the Lord be kindled against you, and destroy thee
suddenly."^ By these marriages, and the fruits of them, the
Lord was provoked, and " said. My Spirit shall not always
strive with man ; " remembering, however, " he is flesh,'' in
his mercy he added, " yet his days shall be an hundred and
twenty years :''^ thus foretelling the destruction of the
world and giving space, all that time, for repentance, till the
ark was built. The flood, however, came without one of
them repenting, believing, or being saved.
Some of the children of these mixed marriages became
mighty men, men of renown ; and, as is generally the case
with those who sin against light and knowledge, they became
giants or monsters in iniquity and crime.
" There were giants in the earth in those days." We read
also of families and even nations of giants among 'the
descendants of Noah after the flood — men of great stature
and strength. The spies, sent by Moses to explore the land
of Canaan, said, " We saw giants, the sons of Anak, which
come of the giants ; and we were in our own sight as grass-
^Rom. ix. 4. 2 Gen. vi. 2. ^Deut. vii. 3, 4. -^Gen. yi. 3.
92 FIEST THINGS.
hoppers, and so we were in their sight/^^ The Lord gave
to the Ammonites for a possession a land previously " occu-
pied by giants ; a people great, and many, and tall, called
Zamzummims : "^ and He gave to the Moabites the land of the
Emims, also " accounted giants." The iron bedstead of Og^
the king of Bashan, one of the remnants of giants, is des-
cribed as being nine cubits, or about fifteen feet, long, and
four cubits, or about six feet, wide.^ Goliath, slain by David,
was about ten feet high. Since his time men have occasion-
ally attained to about the same height. Climate and food
will change the size of men and animals. Some of the Pat-
agonians now would be giants to the Laplanders. As the
term giants is applied only to a few, it is probable that men
before the flood did not differ much from those after it, either
in size or wickedness.
The fossil remains of gigantic animals, some of which are
probably antediluvian, are frequently discovered buried in
the earth, and they may be seen in the various museums.
Some of these apparently belong to species the whole race of
which is extinct. They may have been destroyed by the
flood, or by violent convulsions of the earth causing a change
of climate. Some of them may have been exterminated by
the smaller animals, or by man. As the earth becomes more
populous, and is subdued by man, it is likely other large
animals, which man may not want to use, will disappear
from it.
Note. — ^Prepared restorations of many of these animals, as they are
supposed to have appeared, are exhibited at the Crystal Palace, Sy-
denham. From copies of these, the annexed plate has been prepared.
Some of the largest of them are —
The Iguanodon. A gigantic Lizard, estimated length, thirty to
sixty feet.
The Megalosaurus. Another Lizard, snpj^osed to have been car-
niverous, and probably twenty-five to thirty feet long.
^Numh. siii. 83. ^Deut. ii. 20. ^Deut. iii. 11.
GIGANTIC ANIMALS. 93
Tlie Hylcmsaurus. A combination of tlie Crocodile and Lizard,
covered with scales, and having a row of long spines along the back.
Length twenty to thirty feet.
The Idithyosaurus. According to Mantell, " had the beak of a por-
poise, the teeth of a crocodile, the head and sternum of a lizard, and
the paddle of a whale."
The Plesiosaurus. Having the head of a lizard, the teeth of a
crocodile, a neck of enormous length, like the body of a serpent, a
body and tail of the proportions of an ordinary quadruped, and the
paddles of a turtle or whale. Length twelve or fifteen feet.
The Olyptodon. A gigantic Armadillo, about fourteen feet long.
The Megatherium. A gigantic Sloth, much larger than the ele-
phant ; its body about twelve feet long and eight feet high ; its feet
were more than three feet long, and terminated by immense claws.
The Dinothermm. A gigantic Tapir, much larger than the Mam-
moth ; supposed length eighteen feet.
The Mastodon or Mammoth. In the year 1800, the remains of one,
with the flesh on, was discovered in the ice in Northern Kussia. It
was covered with reddish wool and with hair eight inches long.
The skeleton, now in St. Petersburg, is nine and a half feet high, and
the body sixteen feet in length. It must have been twice the size of
the existing elephant. For some years the flesh of this animal was
cut off for dog-meat by the people around, and bears, wolves and
foxes fed upon it until the skeleton was cleared of its flesh.
CHAPTER XXIV.
THE FIRST VESSEL — FIRST DESTRUCTION OF THE WORLD — THE
DELUGE — CRADLE OF THE WORLD AND OF THE CHURCH.
4 4 jT^ OB saw the wickedness of man was great in the
V3r earth, and that ever}^ imagination of the thoughts
of his heart was only evil continually." " The earth was
filled with violence. And God looked upon the earth, and
behold it was corrupt ; for all flesh had corrupted his way
upon the earth." ^ It would be so now, were it not for the
grace of God. There was, however, one exception : all had
gone astray, " but Noah found grace in the eyes of the Lord.
He was a just man, and walked with God."^ The Lord
communicated to him the fact that He was about to destroy
all that lived upon the earth ; and directed him to build an
ark in a certain manner and of a certain size. Noah
believed God, for " by faith Noah, being warned of God of
things not seen as yet, prepared an ark to the saving of his
house ; by the which he condemned the world, and became
heir of the righteousness which is by faith." ^
The Ark is the first vessel spoken of, although it is likely
small boats had been previously built. It was several times
larger than any vessel ever known, until the late wonder, the
" Great Eastern," was built. The length, breadth, and
height of both these vessels do not vary much ; but the Ark
must have had much greater capacity, as it was built squarer,
» Gen. vi. 5, 11. ^ Gen. vi. 8, 9. ^ Heb. xi. Y.
(94)
THE FIRST VESSEL, 95
being designed simply to float on the water and to carry a
large cargo, while the Great Eastern tapers at the ends and
toward the keel, to give her speed. The cubit is variously
estimated from seventeen and one-half to nearly twenty-two
inches. Estimating it at the latter, the Ark was about five
hundred and forty-seven feet long, ninety-one feet wide, and
fifty-five feet high.
We can easily imagine how much ridicule the Ark must
have excited while it was building. Had there been lunatic-
asylums in those days, Noah would probably have been shut
up in one, and other persons put in charge of his property.
To build the Ark and to provide a year's supply of " of all
food that is eaten " not only took the labor of one hundred
and twenty years, but must also have required a very large
sum of money. When Lot urged his sons-in-law to escape
with him from Sodom, he appeared unto them " as one that
mocked," and was treated as such. We are told that there
will be scoffers in the last days before the world is destroyed
the second time by fire.^ Seeing such an immense vessel
building far away from the sea, which of us would not have
attempted to sneer ? Hear one say, Well, old man, when
are you going to launch her ? How much are you going to
ask for a passage ? Hear another exclaim, *^ He thinks he is
elected to be saved and the rest of the world is to be damned ;
I am thankful I don't believe in so unmerciful a God." The
constant preaching of Noah, his godly, self-denying life, and
his steady, continued efforts in following God's directions, so
that he and his family might be saved, must have made some
serious at times, and perhaps made some try to do some good
works to buy God's favor in case a flood should come. The mir-
acle of all kinds of animals, birds, creeping things, &c., going
" two and two unto Noah into the ark " must have caused some
to wonder for a moment. Some even may have felt a little
solemn, when all had gone in, with Noah, and his wife, and
^ 2 Peter iii. 3,
96 FIRST THINGS.
his sons, and their wives ; and " the Lord had shut him in."^
Happy is it for the people of Grod that tliey " are kept by
the power of God through faith unto salvation/'^ " their lives
hid with Christ in God."^ It is well for them that the Lord
shuts them in, otherwise they would' not stay there. The
mass of the world, however, went on as usual ; " eating and
drinking, marrying and giving in marriage, until the day
that Noah entered into the ark."* " The same day were all
the fountains of the great deep broken up, and the windows
of heaven were opened. And the rain was upon the earth
forty days and forty nights." Doubtless some began to be
frightened when it began to rain ; while others perhaps
laughed at them, saying. We have seen it rain before.
Doubtless, as the storm and the waters rose, many began to
pray ; but it was too late. Perhaps some of Noah's carpen-
ters begged to be admitted into the ark, urging that they
had helped to build it. What other reply could he make to
them, but, You were paid for it ; I can not save you. They
who are now helping to build churches and spread the gos-
pel, without seeking to be saved by faith in the Lord Jesus
Christ, may well ponder the question, " What became of
Noah's carpenters ? "
In forty days the waters had risen fifteen cubits, or about
twenty-three feet, above the highest mountains ; which would
be, on an average, a rise of about seven hundred feet each
day. " And all flesh died ; every living substance was des-
troyed that was upon the face of the ground, and the fowl
of the heaven. And the waters prevailed on the earth an
hundred and fifty days."^
There is no fact in history better attested, independent of
the Word of God, than the flood ; and none more universally
acknowledged by all nations. Many evidences of it exist at
the present day. The highest mountains, in every part of
?Gen. vii. 16. M Peter i. 5. "'Col. iii. 3.
* Matt. xxiv. 38. " Gen, vii, 23.
CRADLE OF THE WORLD. 97
the earth where search has been made, furnish abundant
proofs that the sea has spread over their summits, shells,
skeletons of fish and sea monsters being found on them.
The universality of the flood is shown by the fact that the
remains of animals are found buried far from their native
regions. Elephants, natives of Asia and Africa, have been
found buried in the midst of England ; crocodiles, natives of
the Nile, in the heart of Germany ; shell -fish never known
in any but the American seas, and also skeletons of whales?
in the most inland counties of England, &c.
The waters, after prevailing on the earth one hundred and
fifty days, began slowly to return to their accustomed chan-
nels. In a short time the ark rested upon the mountains of
Ararat, in Armenia ; and some months after that, when the
earth was dried, Noah and his family, who had been just one
year in the ark, went out of it to take possession of a new
world. Western Asia thus became a second time the birth-
place of the human family. This region, a small spot on the
world's surface, was not only the cradle of two worlds, but
also of the Church. While the rest of the world was left
in spiritual darkness, it enjoyed the special manifestations
of God's presence, and the revelations of his will, continu-
ously for four thousand years, until the Creator more signally
honored it by making it the place of his residence while in
the flesh.
" A circle, with its center at Haran, and a radius of four
hundred miles, will embrace Eden and Ararat ; Babylon and
Nineveh, the early seats of learning and science ; Mesopota-
mia, where God revealed himself to Abraham ; Phoenicia,
where commerce and many of the arts of peace arose ; and
Palestine, the birth-place of the prophets, apostles, and evan-
gelists innumerable, and the scene of the birth, labors, and
death of our blessed Lord. Over this wonderful district,
where life was once so abundant, darkness and death have
brooded for centuries.''
7
CHAPTER XXY.
CHRONOLOGICAL TABLE, BEFORE THE FLOOD, ACCOEDING TO
ARCHBISHOP USHER.
From the Creation to the Deluge, Sixteen Hundred and
Fifty-six Years.
A. M, B. C.
1 4004 The creation of all things in six days.
The fall of Adam, and th^ promise of a Saviour.
2 4003 The birth of Cain.
Birth of Abel.
129 3875 Murder of Abel, and curse on Cain.
130 3874 Birth of Seth, Adam his father being 130
years old.
235 3769 Enos born. Seth 105 years old. Revival of
religion. Visible Church formed, and called
by the Lord's name.
Cainan born, Enos his father 90 years old.
Mahalaleel born, when Cainan is 70.
Jared born, when Mahalaleel is 65.
Enoch born, Jared being 162.
Methuselah born, Enoch being 65.
Lamech, father of Noah, born, Methuselah be-
ing 187 and Adam 874 years old.
930 3074 Adam dies, aged 930 years, Lamech, father
of Noah, having lived 56 years cotemporary
with Adam.
987 3017 Enoch is translated, aged 365 years.
1042 2962 Seth dies, aged 912 years. -
1056 2948 Noah is born, Lamech his father being 182.
(98)
325
3679
395
3609
460
3544
622
3382
687
3317
874
3130
CHEONOLOGICAL TABLE. 99
A. M. B, C
1140 2864 Enos dies, aged 905 years.
1235 2769 Cainan dies, aged 910 years.
1290 2714 Malialaleel dies, aged 895 years.
1422 2582 Jared dies, aged 962 years.
1536 2468 Deluge foretold. Noali commanded to build
the ark 120 years before the flood came, and
preaches that time.
1556 2448 Japhet born, his father Noah being 500 years
old.
1558 2446 Shem, the second son of Noah, born.
1560 2444 Ham, third son of Noah, born.
1651 2353 Lamech, father of Noah, dies, aged 777.
1656 2348 Methuselah, the oldest man, dies, aged 969
years. In the same year, and in the six
hundredth year of Noah's age, the flood
con7.es upon the earth and destroys all living
on it excepting those with Noah in the ark.
CHAPTER XXYI.
FIRST THING DONE AFTER THE FLOOD — FLESH FIRST GIYEN
FOR FOOD — FIRST OCCUPATION — FIRST DRUNKENNESS.
SAVED from the wreck of a world, the first thing Noah
did after leaving the ark was to build an altar unto
the Lord, and offer burnt offerings on it. These sacrifices,
like Abel's, were with the shedding of blood ; and as Abel's,
they were accepted by the Lord as " a sweet savour." ^ He
said, " I will not again curse the ground any more for man's
sake ; for (or though) the imagination of man's heart is
evil from his youth ; neither will I again smite any more
every living thing as I have done." He added, " While the
earth remaineth," seed-time and harvest, etc., shall not cease.
Thus, immediately after the flood, an intimation was given
that the earth itself was to remain for a certain time only.
The rainbow was then set in the cloud as a token that all
flesh should not be again destroyed by a flood.
Blessing Noah and his sons, God put the fear and dread
of them on all things that moved, and delivered all creatures
into their hands. He also gave them the flesh of every liv-
ing thing for meat, even as before he had given the green
herb for their food. He forbade the eating of blood ; a law
which was again given to the Church in the time of the
Jews,^ and yet again by the apostles.^ God told them blood
was the life of the flesh. It is a strange fact that the circu-
lation of the blood, as the life of the flesh, was lost sight of
for over three thousand years ; when it was again discovered
^ Gen. yiii. 21. ^ Levit. iii. 1*7. ^ Acts xv. 20.
(100)
FIRST DRUNKENNESS. 101
bj Dr. Harvey, A. D. 1628. The fathers of the new world,
as representatives of the race, were also told : " At the, hand
of every man's brother will I require the life of man. Whoso
sheddeth man's blood by man shall his blood be shed : for in
the image of God made he man." ^
Like all the covenants of God with His people, the prom-
ises and covenants He made with Noah and his sons embraced
their descendants, " Behold I establish my covenant with you,
and with your seed after you." ^
The history that God has given us here again reminds us
that all men are of one family. It says that of the three
sons of Noah, Shem, Ham, and Japhet, " was the whole earth
overspread." ^
We do not read of the gathering of any of the treasures
of the old world from the ruins caused by the flood. Al-
though the owner of a world, Noah went at once to work,
and " began to be an husbandman, and he planted a vine-
yard." The next act recorded of him is not so creditable :
" lie drank of the wine, and was drunken ; and he was un-
covered within his tent." Poor human nature ! Noah, now
an old man over six hundred years old, a believer, a "preacher
of righteousness," exposing himself, drunk and naked. How
faithful is the history God has given us ! showing us not
only the faith, but also the falls, and even the crimes of those
whom He has made heroes and saints in his church.
The different effects on the children of God, and on the
seed of the Serpent, which the knowledge of those sins causes,
were shown by the children of Noah : as they have been
shown by their descendants ever since. The sins of the
Lord's people, and their punishment, as recorded in the
Scriptures, "happened unto .them for ensamples ; and they
are written for our admonition. Wherefore let him that
thinketh he standeth take heed lest he fall." ^ Believers are
^ Gen. ix 5. See First Murder, chap. xvii. ^ q^^^ j^_ g
^ Gen. ix. 19. ^i Cor. x. 11,
102 FIRST THINGS.
thus led to be humble, to watch, and to praj. Unbelievers,
on the contrary, act exactly the reverse. Ham, instead of
mourning at his father's fall, exposed him. Thus, the ene-
mies of the Lord, to this day, take advantage of David's
crime, and make it " an occasion to blaspheme ;" as it was
foretold they would do.^ How many there are now building
their hopes for eternity on the sins of some professing Chris-
tians around them, making them their bridge to heaven!
How many expect to be saved by helieving in Judas !
' 2 Sam. xii. 14.
CHAPTER XXYII.
FIRST GOVERNMENT — FIRST DESPOTISM — FIRST SLAVERY — FIRST
SLAVEHOLDER — DIVINE INJUNCTIONS TO MASTERS, SLAVES,
AND SUBJECTS — THE FOUNDATIONS OF FREEDOM.
\HE first government in the world was parental. This
foundation of all government the Lord has not only
made a necessity in our social relations, but he has recog-
nized it in the fourth and fifth commandments, and confirmed
it, with repeated injunctions to parents and children, through-
out the Bible. From it grew the patriarchal, the parent
becoming the head of a tribe of descendants bearing his
name. Afterward, when gathered into communities, these
heads of families, or some chosen from them, became rulers,
under the title of elders. This name has been a badge of
honor and authority in all ages and in nearly all languages.
Thus the words senior, senor, signor, seigneur, senator, ex-
pressing dignity and authority, come from the Latin word
senior, or elder. So also the title alderman or eldermen.
Unhappily, in many places, the title, as well as the power
associated with it, has been given to men unworthy of the
name, and unfitted both by age and character to rule.
The rulers and judges of the first nation, whom the Lord
called His people, and to whom He gave a constitution and
laws, were appointed as follows : " The Lord said unto
Moses, Gather unto me seventy men of the elders of Israel
whom thou knowest to be the elders of the people, and offi-
cers over them," " and I will take of the spirit which is upon
thee, and will put it upon them, and they shall bear the bur-
den of the people with thee." ^
According to the express directions of the Lord, the visi-
* Numbers xi. 16, lY.
(103)
104 FIRST THINGS.
ble Churcli has always been under tlie government of elders.
When Moses was sent to deliver the Israelites out of Egypt,
he was sent first with a message to the elders of Israel.^
And the elders ruled in Israel until they assisted in putting
our Lord to death. The office was continued in the Christ-
ian church. Even the apostles called themselves elders, and
met with the elders in council when decrees were to be
issued.^ Directions were given to appoint elders in every
church,^ and they were called hishops or overseers, the word
in the original Greek being the same.'' Sin was the cause
of the introduction of other governments, both in the church
and in the state ; and with the change of government came
anarchy, despotism, and slavery.
Noah's fall was the occasion not only of displaying the
different characters of his sons, but also of a prophecy,
showing what was to happen to their descendants, a
prophecy which the history of the world ever since has
proved to have been inspired. While Ham mocked, Shem
and Japhet avoided the sight of their father's nakedness,
and respectfully covered him. When Noah awoke from his
wine, and knew what Ham had done unto him, he said,
" Cursed be Canaan [the son of .Ham] ; a servant of serv-
ants [or the most degraded of slaves] shall he be unto his
brethren."^ Thus the first human slavery spoken of in his-
tory was prophesied, as a consequence of sin. Slavery, as a
curse, descending upon the sinner and his children.
One of the sure consequences of sin has always been
degradation and slavery. The first kingdoms and despotic
governments in the world were founded by the descendants
of Ham. When the Jews rejected the reign of God, tliey
sought a king ; as a consequence, God gave them one, saying,
Their king should tyrannize over them.^ Even civil law
* Exod. iii. 16, 18 ; iv. 29. ^ Acts xx. 28 ; Phil. i. 1.
2 Acts XV. 2, 6, 23 ; 1 Peter v. 1 ; 2 John 1. ^ Gen. ix. 25.
' Titus i. 5, 6, Y; Acts xir. 23. ''I Sam. viii. 1, 11.
FIRST SLAVERY. 105
jiakes criminals labor in state-prisons as slaves. All of iiSj
)eing sinners by nature, are slaves : we are " servants of sin,"^
md are " in the snare of the Devil, taken captive by him at
jis will." 2 When Moses told the children of Israel what
should happen to them after they ceased to obey God, among
other curses which should fall upon them, he said, " Ye shall
be sold unto your enemies for bondmen and bondwomen, and
no man shall buy you."^ And so it proved: when they for-
sook the Lord, " He delivered them into the hands of spoilers
that spoiled them, and he sold them into the hands of their
enemies." ^ This happened no less than six times during the
governnlent of the Judges, and repeatedly afterward ;^ till,
after the crucifixion of the Lord Jesus, when Jerusalem was
destroyed by the Romans, those Jews who escaped from the
great slaughter were sold into slavery ; and such numbers
were offered for sale that thousands perished, because pur-
chasers could not be found for them all. Whenever His
people repented and returned unto Him, the Lord delivered
them from their bondage ; and then. He generally punished
those whom He had used to chastise his people, because they
did it with wicked intent.^
History, in every age, agrees with what is the fact in all
parts of the world now, that, where men have forsaken the
Lord, and where his Word has not free course and is not
glorified, there the masses, already slaves of Satan, become
slaves of their fellow-men. They fall under the iron rule of
a military, civil, or of an ecclesiastical despotism, the last
the worst of them all, bringing soul and body into slavery.
Civil liberty does not of itself make men free ; nor does the
fact of their being citizens of a republic make them so.
" Peoples may not rise, though kings may fall."
The people of Great Britain are free, and live in security
* Eom. vi. lY. '^ 2 Tim. ii. 26. ^ Deut. xxviii. 68. * Judges ii. 14.
* 2 Chron. xxviii. 5 ; xxxvi. 5 ; xxiv. 24 ; 2 Kings xvii. 6 ; etc.
^ Judges iii. 9 ; Isaiah x. 6, 12.
106 FIEST THINGS.
ander a monarch ; while the people of France, during the
.^epublic of 1793, were slaves under a " reign of terror."
Few nations have thus far ever existed on the earth where
the masses have been free ; or where they were fit to be free ;
or where- they could have continued free, if made so.
" Men unfit for freedom can't be free."
The United States enjoy civil and religious liberty, because
they were settled by God-fearing men, and because their
laws and constitutions were framed by such men. Let the
public heart, however, become infidel and corrupt, and sooni
like the so-called South American republics, they will be free
only in name : a degraded people, they will select or become
the prey of unprincipled rulers ; " the wicked will walk on
every side, when the vilest men are exalted," ^ and there
will then be constant revolutions and civil Avars, till despo-
tism will follow anarchy. The nations of the world will not
be fit for universal suffrage until the millennium.
The first slaveholder spoken of is Abraham, the chosen
"friend of God," "^the father of all them that believe."
When, in obedience to the word of the Lord, he left his
kindred and his country, he took with him Sarai, his wife*
and Lot, and all their substance that they had gathered, and
the souls that they had gotten in Haran.^ Driven by a fam-
ine into Egypt, he received from Pharaoh, while there, sheep
and oxen, 'men-servants and maid-servants,^ When he went
to rescue Lot, he armed " three hundred and eighteen trained
servants, horn in his own housed ^ Afterward, Abimelech
*' took sheep, and oxen, and men-servants, and maid-servants^
and gave them unto Abraham."^ Constantly increasing in
wealth, Abraham must have had thousands of slaves ; and
these are spoken of among the blessings given him by God.
His pious servant, in speaking of his master to Laban, said,
" God hath blessed my master greatly." " He hath given
^Psalms xii. 8. . ^Gen. xii. 5. ^ Gen. xiv. 14.
"Rom. iv. 11, 12. -» Gen. xii. 16. « Gen. xx. 14.
FIRST SLAVERY. 107
him flocks and herds, and silver and gold, and men-servants
and maid-servants!^^ etc. When Canaan, through Ham, was
cursed to be a servant of servants unto his brethren, a part
of the Messing upon Shem and Japhet was that Canaan
should be their servant.^
And what is surprising, heathen masters sometimes received
blessings from holding the Lord's people in slavery. Naa-
man the Syrian, was cured of his leprosy through the instru-
mentality of a Hebrew captive, a slave of his wife.^ Poti-
phar, a descendant of Ham, bought and held Joseph as a
slave, and made him overseer in his house. From that time,
*• the Lord blessed the Egyptian's house for Joseph's sake ;
and the blessing of the Lord was upon all that he had."^
The Lord has always recognized and sanctioned the rela-
tionship of master and slave thus instituted. It has a per-
petual recognition in two of the Ten Commandments, the
fourth and the tenth. The masters were not only blessed by
the relationship, but in some cases, as we have already
noticed, slavery proved a blessing also to the slave : by
bringing him, with his master's children, into the visible
church ; into the covenant which God made with his believ-
ing or Christian master, the slave being made, with him, a
partaker of the ordinances, sacraments, and privileges of the
Church.^
Slavery appears to have been common in the time of
Abraham. It was the custom then, as it has been in some
parts of the world ever since, for the victors in war either
to put all the conquered to death or to make slaves of them.
Our own ancestors, the Anglo-Saxons in England, when con-
quered by the Normans, were made slaves. Among the
heathen it has also been common for parents to sell their
children. The Lord refers to this custom, when, in one of
his many touching appeals to his people. He said, " Which of
^ Gen. xxiv. 35. =^ Gen. ix. 26, 27. ^ 2 Kings v. 3.
* Gen. xxxix. 5. ^ Gen. xvii. 12, 13; Exod. xii. 44, 45.
108 FIEST THINGS.
mj creditors is it to whom I have sold you ? Behold, for
your iniquities have ye sold yourselves."^ Persons were
often sold, and children were liable to be taken for debt ; ^
others would go voluntarily into servitude. As the Lord
has done in regard to all relationships not in themselves sin-
ful, so in all ages of the Church, the Lord has given rules
regulating the relationship of masters and servants, or slaves.
His law to the Church in the time of the Jews was, " He
that stealeth a man and selleth him," " he that be found
stealing any of his brethren of the children of Israel and
maketh merchandise of him, he shall surely be put to death." ^
They could, however, hold their brethren as slaves, getting
them by purchase or otherwise according to law, for a term
of six years, when the Hebrew slave was to be again free,
unless he or she declared before the judges that they wished
to remain with their masters, in which case their ears were
to be bored, and then they could not recover their liberty
until the year of jubilee.'' The case was different with those
taken in war, or bought of the heathen. " Of the heathen
that are around you, of them shall ye* buy bondmen and
bondmaids. Ye shall take them as an inheritance for your
children after you, to inherit them for a possession ; they
shall be your bondmen forever." ^ Directions were also given
in regard to the treatment of their slaves.^ In those direc-
tions, in speaking of the slave, these words are used, " for he
is his money." ^
In the New Testament, connected with injunction to hus-
bands and wives, and parents and children, the respective
duties of Christian masters, and of Christian slaves, whether
having Christian or heathen masters, are repeatedly and very
clearly laid down.^ The directions to Timothy, and through
^ Isaiah 1. 1. ^2 Kings iv. 1. ^ Exod. xxi. 16 ; Deut. xxiv. 1.
* Exod. xxi. 2, 6 ; Levit. xxv. 40, ^ Levit. xxy. 45, 46.
« Exod. xxi. 20, 26, 21, 32 ; Dent. xvi. 11, 14. ' Exod. xxi. 21.
« Col. iv. 1 ; Eph. vi. 9 ; 1 Tim. vi. 1, 2 ; EpK vi. 5 ; Col. iii. 22 ; Titus
ii. 9 ; 1 Peter ii. 18.
FIRST SLAVERY. 109
him to all ministers, are : " These things teach and exiiort." '
In regard to this, as in other reforms, the Church then, as it
is at the present day, was troubled by false teachers, and
pretended reformers, who arrogated to themselves more wis-
dom, and greater philanthropy, than the Lord, and his Apos-
tles. The character of those who teach otherwise respect-
ing the duties of masters and slaves, is then given, and also
how such are to be treated. " If any man teach otherwise,
and consent not to wholesome words, even the words of our
Lord Jesus Christ, and to the doctrine which is according to
godliness ; he is proud (or a fool), knowing nothing, but
doting about questions and strifes of words, whereof cometh
envy, strife, railings, evil surmisings, perverse disputings of
men of corrupt minds, and destitute of the truth, supposing
that gain is godliness : from such withdratv thyself, ^^ '
It is worthy of remark, that when these injunctions were
given, there were about sixty millions of slaves in the Ro-
man empire alone ; and a large portion of the slaves in the
world were white ; and also, that their heathen masters had
not only the power of life and death over them ; but they
often exercised that power with the greatest cruelty. Ye-
dius Apollo, an intimate friend of Augustus, fed his fishes
with the flesh of his slaves. The governments of the world
in the days of the Apostles were most arbitrary and tyran-
nical. The deceitful Tiberius, with absolute power, was
bringing the world into slavery, when the Lord uttered
those memorable words : " Render to Cassar the things that
are Csesar's, and to God the things that are God's." ' The
detestable, bloodthirsty Nero was emperor, when Peter
wrote, " Honor the king." " Submit yourselves to every or-
dinance of man for the Lord's sake ; whether it be to the
king, as supreme ;" * etc.
There is no sin in having power ; but in the abuse of it.
The government of God is most absolute ; yet, without sin.
1 1 Tim. vi. 2. "" 1 Tim. vi. 3, 5. ^ Mark xii. 17. * 1 Peter ii. 13^17.
110 FIRST THIJ^GS.
When the Roman centurion urged the Lord to heal his slave
simply by a word, he used as an argument, that the Lord
could control diseases, even as he himself had power over
his slave to send him where he pleased. Our Lord, instead
of telling him he sinned, in having and using such power,
gave him this great commendation ; " I have not found so
great faith, no, not in Israel." ^ Woe I to them who make a
wrong use of power. Woe ! to that individual, or to that
state, which, by its laws, uses power to keep degraded and
debased any whom Christ came to save. Woe ! to them,
who, instead of seeking to break every yoke, and loose
every bond, endeavor to tighten them. They must render
an account to their Master, who is no respecter of persons.
The Scriptures tell us, " The powers that be are ordained
of God. Whosoever, therefore, resisteth the power re-
sisteth the ordinance of God." " To carry out His designs,
God sometimes raises up and gives power, for a season, to
wicked men ; even to usurpers, wading through blood to a
throne. In consequence of Solomon's idolatry, God sent a
message to Jeroboam, which made him king of the ten tribes
after their revolt.^ He sent Elijah to " anoint Hazael to be
king over Syria : and Jehu to be king over Israel :"^ though
they would obtain those kingdoms by killing the sovereigns
then reigning over them. He said to Pharaoh : " For this
cause have I raised thee up, for to shew in thee my power." ^
Speaking of the conquering king of Assyria as " the rod of
His anger," God said, " I will send him against an hypo-
critical nation, to take the spoil and to tread them down
like the mire of the streets. Howbeit, he meaneth not so,
neither doth his heart think so. But it is in his heart to
destroy and cut off nations, not a few." ^ Our Lord said to
Pilate : " Thou couldest have no power against me, except
it were given thee from above." ^ We are directed to honor
* Matt. viii. 10. ^ Rom. xlii. 1. ^ 1 Ivings xi. 9, 31. * 1 Kings xix. 15.
♦ ^Exod. ix. 16. ^ Isaiah X. 6. ' John xix. 11.
FOUNDATIONS OF FREEDOM. Ill
the authority even of such rulers ; and to pay tribute and
custom to whom they are due : for such were in authority
when these injunctions were given. When a deliverer is
sent, or when the people have the power given to them to
throw off the yoke ; then, they are " the powers that be,''
and are to be respected as such. In all history an unsuc-
cessful rebellion is counted as treason ; a successful one, is
honored as a revolution.
The Gospel is the only remedy for any evil connected with
any human institution or government. It fits men to bo
free ; and it will make them so. The Egyptian master put
all that he had into the hands of Joseph, a slave ; and this
slave, afterwards, was raised to be the ruler of all Egypt.
Why ? " The Lord was with Joseph, and the Lord made
all that he did to prosper." ^ Thus Daniel, a captive, is
made first president over an hundred and twenty princes
ruling a kingdom : ^ and the captive Mordecai is made next
to king Ahasuerus over the greatest kingdom then in the
world.^ The wicked king Ahaz was forced to become a
servant to the powerful king of Assyria.'^ His son Heze-
kiah was enabled to throw off the yoke. How ? Hezekiah
" trusted in the Lord God of Israel : he clave to the Lord
and departed not from following him. And the Lord was
with him ; and he prospered whithersover he went forth." ^
Afterwards when the king of Assyria came against him with
an overwhelming host, Hezekiah carried the blasphemous
message which had been sent to him, and spread it before
the Lord with a prayer for deliverance. The answer sent
to that prayer, as recorded, 2 Kings xix. 20, showing how
the Lord controls heathen kings, and protects His own peo-
ple for His own name's sake, is sublime ! The result was :
" the angel of the Lord went out that night and smote in
^ Gen. xxxix. 3, 4. "" Dan. v. 29 ; vi. 1. ' Esther x. 3.
* 2 Kings xvi. Y, 18. ^2 Kings xviii. 5, 7.
112 FIKST THINGS.
the camp of the Assyrians an hundred and four score and
five thousand."
The Lord's people may be called to suffer and to die for
his name's sake ; but they " have the promise of the life that
now is, as well as of that which is to come." ^ They cannot
be kept slaves. They must become rulers. Among the
many blessings promised by the Lord to his people, if they
walked in his statutes and kept his commandments, was :
" The Lord shall make thee the head, and not the tail : and
thou shalt be above only, and thou shalt not be beneath." ^
" Five of you shall chase an hundred, and an hundred of you
shall put ten thousand to flight : and your enemies shall fall
before you." ^ And this was literally true in all the history
of the Jewish nation for fifteen hundred years : ^ and it
has been verified with Christian nations again and again
ever since.
The preface to the ten commandments continually reminds
the people of God that once they were slaves : and also, who
made them free. " I am the Lord thy God, which have
brought thee out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of
bondage." ^ The same motive to love and good works is
taught throughout the Epistles, " For ye are bought with a
price : therefore glorify God in your body and in your spirit,
which are God's." ^ The burden of the " new song " of praise
and thanksgiving in heaven is, " Thou wast slain, and hast re-
deemed us to God by thy blood," " and hast made us unto our
God kings and priests : and we shall reign on the earth." '^
Part of the mission of the Lord Jesus Christ was " to
preach deliverance to the captives, to set at liberty them
that are bruised." ^ Hence, our constant prayer should be,
*' Thy kingdom come."
^ 1 Tim. iv. 8 ; 1 Cor. iii. 22. ^ Deut. xxviii. 13. ^ Leyit. xxvi. 8.
* Gen. xiv. 15 ; Judges vii. 2, 19 ; 1 Sam. xiv. 6 ; 1 Chron. xi. 11, 20.
* Exod. XX. 2. ^ 1 Cor. vi. 20 ; vii. 23 ; 2 Cor. v. 15 ; Titus iL 14.
' Kev. V. 9. ® Luke iv. 18.
<
^ ^
^'f^i
CHAPTER XXYIII.
DESCENDANTS OF HAM — FIEST KINGDOMS — NIMROD — FIRST
CITY AND FIRST BUILDING AFTER THE FLOOD — BABEL OR
BABYLON — FIRST ASTRONOMICAL OBSERVATIONS.
HA^I signifies hlack or burnt. His descendants dwelt
in the tropical or liot regions of the earth. The
Cushites settled in the southern regions of Asia; in time
spreading over Arabia to Egypt. The land of Gush is trans-
lated in the Bible the " land of Ethiopia :" and its inhabi-
tants " Ethiopians." We must bear in mind that generally
those referred to by that name in the Bible are inhabitants of
Arabia, and not of the land now known as Ethiopia, south
of Egypt.^ The sons of Canaan settled in Palestine and
Syria ; and the sons of Mizraim and Phut in Egypt, and
Lybia in Africa.
Neither Ham nor his descendants became degraded slaves
immediately. In fact his descendants for many years were
more powerful than the children of the other sons of Noah,
who were to inherit the blessing. Although they were to be
the slaves of Shem, yet some of them, the Egyptians, held the
Israelites, the best of Shem's children, in the most cruel
slavery for generations.
The first great conqueror spoken of was a grandson of
Ham ; the first cities built after the flood, the first kingdoms
established, the first immense buildings erected, and the first
great works, the remains of some of which are among the
wonders of the world to the present day, were built by the
children of Ha,m. Nations of giants were descended from
' Numb. xii. 1 ; Exod. ii. 21, etc.
8 (113)
114 FIEST THINGS.
Mm : races of men of immense stature and power.^ Like the
descendants of Cain and the " seed of the Serpent^' before
the flood, his descendants were for many years the mighty
men of the world ; while the " children of the promise" were
dwelling in tents and in comparative obscurity. How they
must have scoffed at the prediction of the coming judgment
upon them. How natural that one of them, Goliath, " defied
the armies of the living God !" ^ How sad the fact, that
" because sentence against an evil work is not executed speed-
ily, therefore the heart of the sons of men is fully set in them
to do evil." ^ But God's word and His purposes are sure :
though to men they may appear. slow in their execution.
The first kingdoms after the flood being established by the
descendants of Ham, made them, while conquering others,
the slaves of absolute rulers. The devoted nations, which,
when the cup of their iniquity was full,^ God commanded the
Israelites to destroy, those not destroyed being made the
hewers of wood and the drawers of water ,^ were descended
from Canaan : and so were the Phoenicians and the Cartha-
ginians afterwards subjugated and destroyed by the Greeks
and Romans. The Africans, bought and sold like beasts for
three thousand years to the present day, are descendants of
Ham.
Nimrod, the meaning of whose name is rebellion, impiety,
was a son of Cush and grandson of Ham. " He began to be
a mighty one in the earth. He was a mighty hunter before
the Lord." ^ The Septuagint calls him the Giant Hunter.
According to his name, he was doubtless a bold rebel, fear-
ing: neither God nor man ; like those hunters of whom
Micah speaks, when he says, " They lie in wait for blood ;
they hunt every man his brother :" for Nimrod's conquest
must have been over his relatives. " The beginning of his
kingdom was Babel, and Erech, and Accad, and Calneh, in
^ K'umb. xiii. 33 ; Deut. ii. 20; iii. 11. ^ 1 Saml. xvii. 36, 45.
» Eccles. viii. 11. * Gen. xv. 16. ^ Joslrna ix. 21, 2Y. ' Gen. x. 8.
PIEST KINGDOM. 115
the land of Shinar." According to some lie also founded
Nineveli and the Assyrian empire ; although this appears to
have been done by Asshur when driven by Nimrod out of
Shinar/' The ruins of some of the cities built by Nimrod
still remain ; and his name, proverbial in the time of Moses,
is to the present day familiar to the Arabs. A remarkable
mound on the site of ancient Babylon is now known among
them as the " Hill of Nimrod." He is thought to have
reigned one hundred and forty-eight years, and to have died
B. C. 2099.
Belus succeeded Nimrod and was the second king of Bab-
ylon. According to Pliny, he was the inventor of the Chul-
dean astronomy. He was a student, and spent his time in
improving his people. He reigned sixty years, and died
B. C. 2039. Before ascending the throne he was probably
cotemporaneous with Nimrod, and was perhaps older than he.
Some think that Nimrod and Belus were the same person.
A passage of Eupolemus seems to make Belus to be Ham.
While another would make it appear that Phut, one of the
sons of Ham, also had the name. It was probably a title
given to several of the early kings. Eusebius well says, " It
must be confessed the ancient writers have very much con-
founded these ancient names with one another."
We have no reliable accounts of the nations existing from
the time of Noah to Abraham, excepting such as we can glean
from the Bible. In those days the population of the earth
increased, as it did before the flood, marvelously fast; as
the descendants of Noah for several generations lived nearly
five hundred years. Even when human life was shortened,
Jacob went down into Egypt with his family numbering only
seventy souls : and his descendants when they left Egypt,
two hundred and fifteen years after, numbered over six hun-
dred thousand fighting men : thus making their whole num-
ber more than three millions. However, a numerous seed
' Genesis x. 11.
116 FIRST THINGS.
was part of the blessing promised to Abraham : and Goshea
was given to them as the best of the land of Egypt.^ It was
the most fruitful district of the most fertile part of the world ;
even the women, according to Aristotle, having sometimes
three, four, and even five children at a birth.^ The promised
land did not embrace much territory : yet the Israelites in
taking possession of it destroyed seven nations, whom Moses
describes as greater and mightier than they were.^ These
powerful nations wer^ some of the descendants of Ham.
They had " cities great and fenced up to heaven f and were
" a people great and tall." '^ Before that time, the Emims,
the Horims, and the Zuzims, nations of giants, also descend-
ants of Ham, had been destroyed by the posterity of Lot and
of Esau.^ Thus for a period of about eight hundred years
from the building of Babel to the conquest of Canaan, the
great nations and kingdoms of the world were the descend-
ants of him, upon whose children a curse was resting to be
fulfilled in due time.
We have already noticed that the first city after the crea-
tion and the first cities after the flood were built by the ene-
mies of the Lord, by Cain and by Nimrod, and their follow-
ers. The first city built after the flood was Babel or Baby-
lon. Founded in rebellion and pride, Babylon has always
been opposed to the Lord's people : excepting only when the
Lord, in a few instances, specially interposed by directing
the hearts of its monarchs otherwise. And although even
the traces of the city have long since been almost obliterated
from the earth, still the name, significant of heresy, pride,
and persecution of the Lord^s people, has been given in the
prophesy of the Revelation to Rome and the Papacy : ® and
Babylon exists and will continue till Rome shall be de-
stroyed.'''
* Gen. xlvii. 6. ^ Hist. Anim, 1, vii. ® Deut. Tii. 1 ; iv. 38.
^ Deut. ix. 1,2; i. 28. " Deut. ii. 10, 20, 22.
" Rev. xiv. 8; xvii. G, 18; xviii. 10. ' Rev. xviii. 10, 21, 24.
FIRST BUILDING. 117
Babel or Babylon, tlie same in tlie original, meaning confu-
sion, was founded about one hundred years after the flood ;
B. C. 22^7. The earth till that time had but one language.
To check tlie building of the tower, and to humble its build-
ers, God confounded their language. The place became
afterwards the famous city of Babylon. The tower, it is sup-
posed, afterwards became the tower of Belus in that city.
Herodotus visited this tower, and describes it as a square
pyramid six hundred and sixty feet in length and breadth, or
half a mile in circumference at the base, from which arose
eight towers one above another, decreasing in size to the
summit, which was reached by a broad road winding up
around the outside, wide enough for carriages to pass each
other, and even to turn. Strabo says it rose to the same
height, six hundred and sixty feet.
The tower was used for astronomical observations. The
first record we have of these being made was at Babylon.
It is remarkable that Calisthenes sent to Aristotle a register
of astronomical observations, made at Babylon, extending
back from the taking of that city by Alexander the Great,
nineteen hundred and three years, which goes back to about
fourteen years after the tower was built. It was, however,
chiefly devoted to the worship of Bel or Baal, whose temple
contained immense treasures, including several statues of
massive gold, one of which was forty feet in height. Here
was deposited the sacred golden vessels brought from Jeru-
salem, 2 Chron. xxxvi. 7 ; Jer. li. 44. It ruins are supposed
to be the present Birs Nimroud, six miles south-west of Hil-
leh, the modern Babylon • an immense mound of coarse sun-
dried bricks, laid with bitumen, strewn with fragments of
pottery, etc., fused by some intense heat. It is one hundred
and ninety feet high, with a tower on the top thirty-five feet
high and ninety feet in, circumference, rent at the top as if
by lightning.^ " Let us make us a name,'^ cried the builders.^
* Bible History. = Genesis xi 4.
118 FIRST THINGS.
And SO men are still striving to do ; although time is con-
stantly proving the truth of the declaration of the Lord, that
every high tower, and the haughtiness of men, shall be made
low, and the Lord alone shall be exalted.^
From the time of the confusion of tongues, Babylon figures
very little in history, until the ambassadors of Merodach-
baladan came to Hezekiah, B. C. 712, to congratulate hiin
on his miraculous recovery from sickness : a period of about
fifteen hundred years ; during a part of which period Nineveh
had been the seat of empire. It would be out of place, there-
fore, to do more than to take a glance at its growth, till
under Nebuchadnezzar it attained the summit of splendor,
with walls sixty miles in circumference, three hundred feet
high, and seventy-five feet wide, having on each side twenty-
five brazen gates, from which roads crossed to the opposite
gates. The king's palace was in an enclosure of six miles in
circumference, in which were the hanging gardens, sustained
by arches upon arches four hundred feet high, terraced off
for trees and flowers, and watered from the river by con-
cealed machinery.
Many centuries before this, a " goodly Babylonish garment"
was so coveted that one of them, with a little gold, tempted
Achan to bring defeat on Israel, and destruction upon him-
self and his family.^ See her the Paris of the world ! furn-
ishing it with perfumes and fashions. See her renowned for
her learning, her manufactures, and her skill in the arts ;
renowned also for her wealth, her luxury, and her licentious-
ness. See her just as she is becoming the seat of empire
and the proud mistress of all nations, and then listen to the
fearful denunciations of Isaiah, the prophet of the Lord, ut-
tered more than a century before Babylon reached the sum-
mit of its greatness. We hear the echoes of his words :
" Babylon, the glory of kingdoms, tlie beauty of the Chal-
dees' excellency, shall be as when God overthrew Sodom and
^ Isaiah ii. 11, 15 ; Rev. xvi. 19. ^ Joshua vii. 21.
BABYLON. 119 I
Gomorrah. It shall never be inhabited, neither shall it be
dwelt in from generation to generation : neither shall the
Arabian pitch tent there : neither shall the shepherds make
their fold there : but wild beasts of the deserts shall lie i
there ; and their houses shall be full of doleful creatures ; ]
and owls shall dwell there, and satyrs shall dance there.
And the wild beasts of the islands shall cry in their desolate
houses, and dragons in their pleasant palaces.'' ^ And hear-
ing these words, we have the exact description of Babylon ]
as it is at the present day ; and also a standing witness that i
the Lord rules among the nations and directs the end from
the beginning. . \
^ Isaiah xiii. 19; xiv. 22; xlvii.
CHAPTER XXIX.
NINEVEH — THE. ASSYRIANS — SEMIRAMIS.
NINEVEH, the capital of Assyria, was founded shortly
after Babel or Babylon, about two hundred and eighty
miles north of that city, on the east bank of the river Tigris.
The Bible account is, " Out of that land (Shinar) went forth
Asshur (one of the sons of Shem) and builded Nineveh, and
the city of Rehoboth, ^ " etc. In the margin it reads, Nimrod
after building Babylon and Calneh in the land of Shinar,
went out into Assyria and builded Nineveh and Rehoboth,
the streets of the city or the great public or market places.
A tradition declares that Nineveh took its name from Ninus ;
and that Ninus was the son of Nimrod : this, however, could
not well have been, as Micah speaks of the land of Asshur
and the land of Nimrod as two distinct countries ; ^ and be-
sides, according to received history, Ninus, the second king
of Assyria, conquered the Babylonians and united the two
kingdoms.
The Assyrians were the descendants of Asshur, the second
son of Shem. His territory in Shinar appears to have been
invaded by Nimrod the giant hunter of his brethren before
(or in the face of) the Lord. Nineveh was probably first
built as a fortress. The kingdom of Assyria was inconsider-
able when Ninus began to reign. He soon enlarged it by his
conquests and laid the foundations of a mighty empire. He
was ever restless and ambitious, and, according to Justin,
began the first general wars, and thus broke the peace of the
world. He died B. C. 1987, after reigning fifty-two years.
'Gen. X. 11. 'Micah, Y. 6.
(120)
ASSYRIA. 121
The Assyrian empire was founded, B. C. 2059, and lasted
till the reign of Sardanapalus, the thirty-first sovereign, B. C.
747, a period of about 1300 years. Little is known of Nine-
veh or Assyria during nearly the whole of that period. The
first king of Assyria mentioned by name in Scripture is Pul,
supposed to have been the father of Sardanapalus. Pul in-
vaded Israel in the days of Menahem, B. C. 769 : ^ having
been " stirred up by the God of Israel" to do this, because
Israel had forsaken the God of their fathers.^ Before this
we have a partial history of Nineveh in the book of Jonah,
B. C. 862; in which it appears that "Nineveh believed
God," ^ when He sent a prophet with a message threatening
its destruction. As the result of that faith, we behold
all the inhabitants of a great heathen city humbling them-
selves before God : proclaiming a fast ; and, from the king
down, the greatest to the least, putting on sackcteth ; sitting
in ashes ; repenting of sin ; and crying mightily unto God.
It is not strange that God heard them.
It was by the king of Assyria that the Lord removed
Israel out of his sight for their sins.* From that time the
ten tribes disappeared. It was a king of Assyria that sent
the blasphemous message to Hezekiah ; and it was to his
dwelling at Nineveh that he returned, after the angel of the
Lord had smitten in one night, in the camp of the Assyrians.
a hundred and fourscore and five thousand.^
Of Assyrian history, written by natives, nothing remains
excepting some fragments of Berosus the Babylonian, who
wrote in the fourth century before Christ, and is quoted by
Josephus. The history of Assyria, said to have been written
by Herodotus, is lost. Outside of the Bible, little depend-
ence can be placed on any history, written by the ancients,
of occurrences which took place before their day. When
they speak of such events, they not only do not agree one
* 2 Kings XV. 19. M Chron. v. 25, 26. ^ Jonah iii. 5.
* 2 Kings xvii. 5, 23. ^ Isaiah xxxvii. 37.
122 FIRST THINGS.
with another, but they also blend truth and fiction, tradition
and superstition, so together, as to make the sifting difficult,
and at times impossible. For instance, few names are more
celebrated than that of Semiramis, described by some as queen
of Babylon, and by others as queen of Nineveh : while there
are some who, on account of the difficulty of ascertaining
who she was, when she lived, and what she accomplished, go
so far as to doubt whether there ever was such a queen at
all ; and suppose that it was the name of a tribe. As to the
age in which she lived, Syncellus, a Byzantine historian, gives
the date 2177 B. C, while Herodotus places her about B. C.
713 ; and Dr. Usher, B. C. 1215. Different authors make
her the wife, daughter, mother, and some the step-mother of
Ninus. There may have been several queens by the name
of Semiramis, each adding to the celebrity of the name, and
also tending to add to the obscurity of ancient history.
Semiramis removed her court from Nineveh to Babylon : and
her name may be associated thus with both cities.
The vast works attributed to this ancient queen are the
great walls of Babylon, and the first bridge over the Eu-
phrates. She is described as leading her armies to battle,
and as a conqueror penetrating India and Btctria. The ac-
counts of her death are as various as those of her life. Ac-
cording to one, she was turned into a dove, and worshipped
under that form in Assyria ; another tells us that she burned
herself, at Babylon, in a fit of grief at the loss of a favorite
horse ; a third states that she was murdered by the com-
mand of her step-son Ninyas'. She is said to have come into
notice in this way : Ninus was unsuccessful in an attack
on some fortress ; Semiramis, the wife of one of his soldiers,
promised to gain it for him. Being allowed to take the
command, by her skill and courage she not only took the
fortress, but so gained for herself the admiration of Ninus,
that he took her from her husband, and made her the partner
of his empire ; and when he died, he left the whole, with
SEMIEAMIS. 123
Ninyas, his son, under her care. Ninus was buried by Se-
miramis, according to one tradition, in a very singular man-
ner. She caused his own palace to be converted into his
tomb, by having it entirely covered over with a vast mound
of earth, said to be the only memorial of the site of Nine-
veh after its destruction. This token of affection and mode
of burial are disputed by two other traditions, one of which
says he was buried at Babylon, and another, that he ended
his days at Crete, whither he fled on being dethroned by
Semiramis. Ninyas, the reputed murderer of his step-
mother, is described by some as a very weak and sensual
character ; and his successors, showing little of the spirit of
Nimrod, became proverbial for sloth and luxury ; leaving no
names worthy of record. According to others, Ninyas,
making no wars, regulated his extensive dominions v,dth
such wisdom, that he laid the foundations of an empire
which lasted over a thousand years ; a record more credi-
table than if he had made many wars and conquests.
Strabo says that Nineveh was much larger than Babylon.
Diodorus Siculus describes it as about twenty miles long,
twelve miles broad, and sixty miles in compass. This
agrees with the prophet Jonah, who speaks of it as " an ex-
ceeding great city of three days' journey," ^ twenty miles a
day being the common computation for a pedestrian. It was
surrounded by large walls 100 feet high, so broad that three
chariots could drive abreast on them, and defended by 1,500
towers, 200 feet in height. Nineveh is made important in
scripture, by having two of the books of the minor prophets,
Jonah and Nahum, making reference almost exclusively to
it. In the latter, a perfect poem, the threatenings against
Nineveh are continued, says Dr. Adam Clarke, " in a strain
of invective, astonishing for its richness, variety, and energy.
One may hear and see the whip crack, the horses prancing,
the wheels rumbling, the chariots bounding after the gallop-
^ Jonah iii. 3.
124 FIEST THINGS.
ing steeds, t"he reflection from the drawn and highly polished
swords, and the hurled spears, like flashes of lightning daz-
zling the eyes, the slain lying in heaps, and horses and
chariots stumbling over them !" A little more than a hun-
dred years after Nahum's prophecies of its destruction,
Nineveh was destroyed, B. C. 606 or 612. Erom that
time no mention is made of Nineveh by any of the sacred
writers ; and the most ancient of the heathen authors speak
of it, as a city once great, but now destroyed. For about
two thousand years even the traces of Nineveh were lost to
the world ; so utterly " Nineveh is laid waste." ^
Much interest has lately been excited by the wonderful
discoveries of Mr. Layard, and the museums of the world
are being enriched by means of the excavations made by
him on the site of ancient Nineveh. Palaces buried under
the sand for twenty-four centuries are brought to view ;
with their walls partly faced with alabastar slabs, nine to
twelve feet long, covered with paintings and sculptures ;
serving the double purpose of ornament, and of historical
annals, by commemorating battles and great events. In these
the king is always represented as much larger than other
men, and is foremost in hunting scenes, battles, sieges, tri-
umphs, and religious ceremonies ; all of which are painted
on the walls in great variety, and in gorgeous colors.
Nimrod, the giant hunter, may have been represented ; or
the impression may have started from him that kings were
to be thought of as giants. The immense winged bulls and
lions with human heads, standing ten to sixteen feet high at
the doorways, the space covered, and the thickness of the
walls, in some places fifteen feet, give us some idea of the
grandeur of the palaces ; while the paintings and relics
found reveal their national and domestic manners, their
character, and religious condition : all agreeing with such
accounts of them as we find in the Bible.
* K'ahum iii. Y.
NINEVEH. ' 125
In regard to luxury and " the pride of life," the ancients
doubtless equaled the present day. Mr. Layard says, that
the Assyrians, " in form, color, ornament, and artful disposi-
tion of attire, and in careful decoration of their person, seem
to have given the pattern of luxury to all other people ; and
it appears as if they could never be outdone. An ancient
Assyrian, in the very height of the mode in his day, painted
his eyebrows and his cheeks, whitened his complexion, some-
times even washed in milk, and had the whole skin rubbed
over to make it smoother and softer. He curled his long
hair with the greatest exactness, as also his mustaches, and'
even curled or carefully plaited his beard. If natural hair
was wanting (theirs was usually abundant) its place was sup-
plied, as among the Egyptians, by false hair. From his
sandals to his cap, from his dagger-hilt to the point of his
sword-sheath, all was labored ornament ; necklaces, earrings,
amulets, seals,
1- -
%''*
CHAPTER XXXY.
FAITH — FIRST FALSE RELIGIONS — FIRST IDOLATRY — FIRST
WORSHIPPING OF IMAGES — ANCIENT MYTHOLOGY — INFI-
DELITY
"EXT to pride and selfishness, tlieVe is no principle of
our nature more universal than faith. There is none
so necessary to our peace as a faith well founded. Man lives
by faith from the cradle to the grave. Alas ! how often he
finds that it has been misplaced. The husbandman buries
his seed with faith ; the sailor has faith in his vessel, in his
compass, and in his charts. What would society be, if sud-
denly every man should lose all faith ? If each should at
once distrust his neighbor : if children should lose confidence
in their parents — husbands in their wives — men in their
friends : if there should be no faith in ministers, or physi-
cians, or in the protection of the laws : and above all, if
every one should at once lose all hope of the mercy of God ?
Remove faith from the earth, and it would become at once a
hell : and all men would at once become demons ; fearing,
hating, and endeavoring to destroy one another.
Faith is a necessity of our nature, springing from our rela-
tions to God : for in Him we live, and move, and have our
being. Every man at times realizes his utter helplessness,
and his need of help from some superior power : he also is
conscious that he is to render an account of his thoughts and
his deeds. All, excepting the children of God, dread an un-
certain future. Man therefore must have a religion. When
created, the faith of man was placed in God, and he had per-
fect peace. Satan tempted him to doubt ; fear and hatred
(149)
150 FIEST THINGS.
of God followed ; man's faith became like a vessel adrift :
and here we have the origin of all false religions. To fix
the faith of man again on its proper object is the aim of all
revelation. The Gospel call is, " Believe." He who believes
the revelation God has made of His Son, receives the sealing
of the Holy Spirit : ^ there is no more condemnation for him :
and the word of God assures him of having an eternal life.^
In following the progress of the false religions that have
been in the world, we notice several remarkable featm^es in
which they all agree with one another and differ from that
which God has instituted.
There is a striking resemblance between the marvelous in
the Bible and the marvelous in the religious history and sys-
tems of the ancient heathen world. Some of this resem-
blance is to be seen among the heathen even at the present
day.
All the religions of the earth show traces of having a com-
mon origin. All false religions point to early facts common
to them all : and, for the most part, all have retained the
same rites and sacrifices of which we read in Scripture, as
appointed and used in the service of Jehovah : all obviously
derived from the original truth, though greatly corrupted
and perverted. They " turned the truth of God into a lie."
Not only are the leading historical facts recorded by
Moses in the first chapter of Genesis, such as the creation,
the primeval happiness of man, the fall, the deluge, etc., to
be found in the traditions and the religions of all the ancient
heathen nations ; but likewise, the shadows of nearly all the
great doctrines of revealed truth. Ideas of a Supreme God
— of God manifesting himself in the flesh — of an atonement
— of a future state of rewards and punishment — of a heavenly
deliverer to come, etc., may be traced, floating down through
all ages, and in all religions, until " the Desire of all nations"
came.
» Eph. i. 13. 2 1 John v. 13 ; Rom. v. 1 ; Gal. v. 22 ; Rom. iv. 7.
FIEST FALSE RELIGIONS. 151
In all ages tlie assertion has been true, that " there is none
other name under heaven given among men whereby we must
be saved," ^ but that of the Lord Jesus Christ. False re-
ligions have aids : the Christian alone has a Saviour.
While having so much in common, there are several other
characteristics in which the false religions have always been
entirely in opposition to the true.
The religion which God has instituted is founded in love ; ^
its " God is love ;" ^ its motive power is " the love of Christ
constraining ;" ^ while every other religion that has ever
existed, whether Paganism or a corrupted Christianity, has
been founded in fear ; and its motive power is fear.
Having lost the knowledge of God through the Fall, man,
in- his natural state, never has conceived a true idea of the
nature, holiness, and perfections of God. Being impure him-
self, he cannot imagine a pure God. " Unto them that are
defiled and unbelieving is nothing pure."^ For the same
reason, such a character as the Lord Jesus Christ never could
have been conceived by man.
In all false systems of religion, salvation and peace are
sought by a reliance on works, or human merits ; in God^s
plan, we are "justified by faith without the deeds of the
law f ^ and " being justified by faith, we have peace with
God through our Lord Jesus Christ." ''
In all ages. Faith in Christ, working by love, has purified
the heart and enabled its possessor to overcome the world.
On the contrary, unbelief and false religions have always
tended to moral and physical degradation. This result is
inevitable from the difference of the gods worshipped. What
force could such injunctions as, " Be ye holy, for I am holy,"
have, coming from such characters as Jupiter or Venus : or
from infidels, such as Voltaire or Thomas Paine ?
^ Acts iv. 12. "" John iii. 16. •'' 1 John iv. 7-13, 16.
* 2 Cor. V. 14 ; 1 John iv. 19. ^ Titus i. 15, 16.
« Rom. iii. 28. '' Rom. v. 1.
152 FIRST THINGS.
As we have already noticed, the Deluge did not wash out
the depraved nature of man. The judgments of God never
do this. In the history of the Church, we see that even
great deliverances, stringent laws, and the separation of the
Church from the rest of the world, could not keep them from
idolatry. Man must he born again. Immediately after the
flood the corruption of the truth, therefore, grew naturally,
and spread with the rapid increase of the population of the
earth. Noah lived, after that event, three hundred and fifty
years, and Shem, five liundred years ; before the death of
Shera, almost the whole world had become idolaters.
The corruption of religion being gradual, however, some
knowledge of the true God was retained ; and, also, some
of the forms of worship required by him. Bishop Horseley
compares the early ages of incipient idolatry, when the wor-
ship of idols was connected with the worship of the true
God, to the Romanists, who pay such adoration to the virgin
Mary and other saints, though still worshipping the Trinity.
Amid the general idolatry which prevailed almost every-
where, some persons were found from time to time, in diJ0ferent
lands, who still acknowledged God. In Canaan Abraham
met Melchizedec, who was so great a priest of the Most High
God that even Abraham gave tithes to him. In Gerar, it
is said, king Abimelech feared God. In later days we read
of Job and his friends, who probably lived in Arabia, and ^
also, of the prophet Balaam, who lived in Moab. Centuries
after, Nebuchadnezzar and Belshazzar, Darius and Cyrus, by
decrees made public recognition of Jehovah, as the true
God. The first to welcome the Redeemer into the world
were the magi or wise men from the East. The revela-
tions which God made of himself to our first parents and to
the patriarchs ; and the history of creation and of tlie first
occurrences in the earth which He gave by the hand of
Moses ; and fragments of some of the prophecies, especially
that of a great Deliverer to come, found their way, and were
FIRST IDOLATRY. 153
retained, though m a corrupted form, in ahnost all na-
tions.
The only account of the religion adopted by those who
forsook the worship of the true God before the flood, is that
of Cain. No reference is made to idols or graven images
during that period. From the first, Satan has continued to
tempt mankind, as he did Jesus, by perverting sacred truths.
The sacrifice, appointed by God to direct the faith and hope
of men to the Saviour, was first perverted by Cain. The
Lord's Supper, instituted as a commemoration,^ not as a sac-
rifice, for " Christ was once offered to bear the sins of
many," ^ has since been perverted into an idolatrous worship
by the Papists and other nominal Christians. Rejecting the
sacrifice ordained and provided by God, the followers of
Cain, if they offered at all, like him offered of their own
works. Unitarianism was the first false religion.
Shortly after the flood idolatry appeared in different forms.
In Babylon, the sun and moon, and afterwards the other
heavenly bodies, were first worshipped. The influence which
the heavenly bodies exert on the earth, giving light and
heat, causing vegetation, affecting the winds and the tides,
etc., led men first to regard them as ministers of God, and
then to worship them, as the dispensers of benefits. In
Babylon was the great temple of Belus, or the sun. It was
afterwards connected with the worship of Nimrod under the
name of Bel or Baal, rider. Sanchoniathon, the Chaldean
historian, gives the following account of its establishment :
" In the second generation of men, during a great drought,
Genus and Genia (supposed by Bishop Cumberland to be
Cain and Caifia) stretched forth their hands to heaven, in
adoration of the sun, for they supposed him to be Beel Jamin,
or the Lord of the heavens. Afterwards in the fifth gener-
ation, two pillars were consecrated to the elements of fire
and wind." He also says, that after the flood, the first del-
» Luke xxii. 19. « Heb. ix. 25, 28.
154 FIRST THINGS.
fied mortal was Noali, or Chryson, and that the several mem-
bers of his family after their death were raised to the rank
of gods, in connection with the heavenly bodies. The sect
of the fire worshippers, which was very early founded, still
exists in the East. Fire from heaven consuming the sacri-
fices accepted of God probably led to the first worship of
fire as symbolical of the Deity. Idolatry soon enlarged it-
self into the deification and worship of every thing in nature,
which had life, influence, or power ; especially generative
power. The sun, moon, and stars ; the wind, fire, trees,
vegetables ; beasts of the field, fowls of the air, — all had
some energies and influence. Tliey became gods to men,
as having some of the attributes of the Creator ; and thus
the doctrine of pantheism, which exists to this day, even in
Christian lands, was introduced. They concluded, God was
in all things, and all things were a part of God — God was
the world, and the world was God. The learned Cudworth
says, " The pagans agreed in two things ; first, in breaking
and crumbling the Deity into many gods ; second, in deifying
all things."
Becoming by idolatry more and more degraded, men at
last began to worship inanimate things, and even the works
of their own hands. Then we see a rational being, so called,
such a fool as is so graphically described by the prophet
Isaiah : " He heweth down cedars. He burneth part thereof
in the fire. With part thereof he eateth flesh ; he roasteth
roast and is satisfied ; yea, he warmeth himself, and saith,
Aha, I am warm : and the residue thereof he maketh a god,
his graven image : he falleth down unto it, and worshippeth
it, and prayeth unto it, and saith, Deliver me ; for thou art
my god." ^
The degradation of the Egyptians in their idolatry made
their worship an object of derision to the heathen satirists.
Rhodius Anaxandrides, as translated by an old author, says i
* Isaiah xliv. 14-17.
FIRST IDOLATKT. 155
I sacrifice to God the beef, which you adore.
I broil the Egyptian eel, which you (as God) implore.
You fear to eat the flesh of swine, I find it sweet ;
You worship dogs, to beat them I think meet.
When they my store devour."
And Juvenal, as translated by the same author, says
" The Egyptians think it sin to root up, or to bite
Their leeks or onions, which they serve with holy rite ;
O happy nations, which of their own sowing
Have store of Gods in every garden growing."
This degraded worship was preferable, however, to the
cruel and horrid rites of some of the heathen, such as the
Canaanites and their colony Carthage and Tyre in their
worship of Molock and Kronos or Baal. They threw their
children, chosen out of the best families, into the arms of an
idol, which stood in the midst of a fire with arms stretched
out sloping down, so that tlie children dropped into the
glowing furnace below. The Persians and other nations
buried people alive in sacrifice ; Amestis, wife of Xerxes,
buried twelve persons alive for the good of her soul. The
offering of human victims has been almost everywhere com-
mon 5 it existed in America when discovered, and it exists
in portions of the earth to this day. In Mexico from twenty
to fifty thousand victims were said to have been offexed
yearly. In some nations, not cannibal, portions of these
human sacrifices were eaten in obedience to their religion.
In times of emergency, or to ensure success, many communi-
ties would offer human victims, and individuals their own
children in sacrifice. In times of public calamity, hundreds
of children would at once be seized and offered in sacrifice
to appease the anger of their gods. In all ages men have
been offering " the fruit of their bodies for the sin of their
souls." In reviewing the sacrifices of the nations, and con-
sidering the cruel natures of the gods that required such
sacrifices, Plutarch, himself a heathen, was compelled to ex-
156 FIRST THINGS.
claim, " Tell me now, if the monsters of old — tlie typhons
and giants of old — were to expel the gods and rule the world
in their stead, could thej require a service more horrid than
these infernal rites and ceremonies ?" The heathen never
conceived that " God is love." •
The worship of animals was probably first introduced as
emblems of particular attributes or traits esteemed by their
worshippers; as the ox, strength; the lion, courage; etc.
The Greeks refined upon this mode, by making deities of
these traits bearing human forms ; and representing them by
images or statues ; as Mars, the god of war ; Minerva, the
goddess of wisdom ; Yenus, of beauty, etc. They, however,
further degraded their gods by deifying their own passions.
The worship of ancesto\^s, and of deceased heroes, was
early adopted. The children of Ham in Egypt, as we have
noticed, worshipped him, as the founder of their nation and,
according to their idea, of the human race, under the names
Amoun and Chem.^ Afterwards, many of the minor gods of
the Greeks came in this way. The worship of deceased
rulers commenced with Nimrod, and was continued till the
times of the early Roman emperors ; many of whose coins,
struck after their decease, gave them the title of gods.
Even the star, to which Julius Csesar was supposed to have
ascended, was worshipped. Some courted, and even received
that honor during their lifetime. When Herod once made
an oration, the people shouted " It is the voice of God and
not of a man." ^ The Romish Church has adopted the same
species of idolatry in the adoration of the Virgin Mary, of
the Saints, and of their relics and images.
Bishop Meade speaking of the tendency of man to idolatry
says, " It is difficult to divest our own sacred poetry of the
language of idolatry, as for instance in the beautiful hymn :
^ The powers of the two Hebrew consonants forming the name of Ham
are equal to our ch and m.
' Acts xli. 22;
ANCIENT MYTHOLOGY. 157
" Star of the East, the horizon adorning,
Dawn on our darkness,' etc., etc.
And in our great national song :
' Hail, Columbia, happy land !
Plail, ye heroes, heaven born band !*
" How few, in repeating and singing these lines, consider
tha,t they are using the language of paganism !"
Whatever remains of the truth were kept in the different
false religions which have appeared on earth, in all, how-
ever, is seen the slimy track of the serpent. ' In many of
them he is openly worshipped ; in all, his controlling influ-
ence as the god of this world is shown. The heathen not
only acknowledged the existence of malignant spirits or
demons ; but the evil spirit or principle has been worshipped
all over the world in some form or other, with a view to
avert calamities ; and wherever the devil had most power,
and idolatry and wickedness most prevailed, there the sym-
bol or sign of the serpent was most used. " In a short time,"
says an able writer, " the power of the devil was such, that
he outstripped God himself in the number and splendor of
his temples, the number of his votaries, and the pomp of his
worship. And this was almost always accompanied with
more or less of the symbol of the serpent."
Varro, the Roman historian, in speaking of the gods, says,
"■ They call those gods which, if they had life and breath,
and a man should meet them unexpectedly, would pass for
monsters." Necessarily the character of their deities con-
tributed much to demoralize the heathen. Their examples,
and their worship, sanctioned the most infamous vices. It is
impossible to describe them without shocking purity and
modesty. No wonder then that their worshippers often
" Sought to merit heaven
By making earth a hell."
That there were men in early days trying to persuade
158 FIRST THINGS.
themselves and others that they were infidels, we may infer
from the expression in the Psalms : " The fool hath said in
his heart, There is no God." ' A wicked heart has shown
many a man with brains to be a fool. That infidels have
always been despicable, even among the heathen, we may
judge from Homer making Hector say,
" The weakest atheist wretch all heaven defies,
But shrinks and shudders when the thunder flies."
The French Revolution, in 1793, shows us the natural
fruit of infidelity. The convention of France, after abolish-
ing the Sabbath, dethroned the King of Heaven by a formal
act ; and then worshipped a naked prostitute as the goddess
of reason. Speaking of France at this period, Alison in his
history of Europe, goes on to say : " The services of relig-
ion were now universally abandoned ; baptisms ceased ; the
burial service was no longer heard ; the sick received no
communion ; the dying, no consolation. The village bells
were silent ; the sabbath was obliterated ; infancy entered
the world without a blessing, and age left it without hope.
On every tenth day, a revolutionary preacher ascended. the
pulpit and preached atheism to the bewildered multitude.
On all the public cemeteries was placed this inscription,
' Death is an eternal sleep.^ At the same time, the most
sacred relations of life were placed on a new footing. Mar-
riage was declared a civil contract, binding only during the
pleasure of the contracting parties. A decree of the con-
vention also suppressed the academies, public schools, and
colleges, including those of medicine and surgery. And in
this general havoc, even the establishments of charity w^ere
not safe. The revenues of the hospitals and humane insti-
tutions were confiscated, and their domains seized as part of
the national property." The vilest men then rose to power ;
and the most horrible butchery of thousands of her best citi-
^ Psalm xiv. 1.
INFIDELITY. 159
zens, men, women, and children, followed ; and all France
soon ran with blood. Thus human reason, a traitor since
the fall, shows what it will do when it is made a god.
The religions of the world have always formed a very im-
portant part of its history. When Adam altered his rela-
tions to God through the fall, the instant change which
came upon his moral and physical nature, affected his whole
future history ; and not only his, but also that of all his pos-
terity. Ever since, according to the character of their re-
ligions, have nations been elevated or debased. It will
always be seen that " righteousness exalteth a nation f * and,
"happy is that people whose God is the Lord.'
77 2
* Prov. xiv. 34. ' Psalms cxliv. 16.
CHAPTER XXXYI.
ANCIENT TRADITIONS — CREATION — CHAOS — SABBATH — GARDEN
OF EDEN — MAN, ONE FAMILY — EARLY GOLDEN AGE — DE-
TERIORATION OF THE RACE — THE FALL — SATAN — THE
SERPENT — THE DELUGE — MOUNTAINS — CHERUBIMS — TOWER
OF BABEL — EARLY GIANTS — END OF THE WORLD — AFRICAN
TRADITIONS.
ALMOST all nations have retained, tlirougli tradition,
some ideas of creation, of the Fall, of the Deluge, and
of the other great facts connected with the early history of
the world ; all clearly derived from the same original source.
The universality of a tradition serves to confirm the historical
truth of the fact on which it was founded : the word oif God,
however, needs no such testimony. These traditions are
worthy of an examination, as they are part of history, and
have helped to form it.
Creation, Chaos. — The first heathen writings, which have
come down to us perfect, are those of the poets Hesiod and
Homer. They flourished about B. C. 900 ; a century after
Solomon had electrified the earth by his wisdom. Hesiod's
account of the origin of all things evidently presents scraps
of distorted truth. He says, that Chaos (which answers to the
Note. — In preparing this and some of the following chapters free use
has been made of a learned and interesting work, entitled " The Bible and
the Classics," by the late Rer. William Meade. Such as desire to examine
more fully into the connection between the Bible and the many gleams of
primitive truth which have found their way into the religions of the heathen,
and are scattered through the writings of the ancient heathen philosophera
and poets, will be gi'atified by that work.
(160)
TRADITION — SABBATH — GARDEN OF EDEN. 161
" without form and void " of the Bible) was the parent of
Earth, of Erebus, and of Night. The Hebrew word for even-
ing is erev, from which Erebus seems to have been formed.
From Erebus and Night, he goes on to say, came the Sky and
Day. From Earth came Heaven, Hills, Groves, etc. From
Heaven and Earth came Ocean, etc. All these, which in the
Bible history appear in beautiful succession, created by the
word of God, the poet makes gods ; and then adds fables con-
cerning them that shock both common sense and decency.
Some of the Greeks, dissatisfied with Hesiod's fables, invented
fresh ones. The Athenians called themselves " sons of the
earth " and " children of the clay," claiming that their fore-
father was the first of created beings ; having a plain reference
to the creation of Adam. Before Hesiod's time, Orpheus had
taught that, In the beginning were cliaos and a thick darkness ;
that light burst forth ; that the sun, moon and stars came out
of chaos ; and that man was formed out of dust, and was en-
dued with a rational soul by a supreme creative divinity.
Thales, six centuries later, after learning wisdom in the
East, taught nearly the same. The Phoenicians, according
to Sanchoniathon, held, that dark air and chaos, mixed,
formed the rudiments of all things ; then appeared the sun,
moon and stars ; afterwards the fishes and the finite crea-
tion, and last of all two mortals were formed, the parents of
the human race. Chaos, or water, or some fluid mass, is
spoken of in the writings of many of the ancient philosophers
and poets as that out of which the Great Mind made all
all things. In time chaos itself was deified.
Sahhath. — We have already noticed the fact of the Sab-
bath having found its way among almost all nations. Ac-
cording to the Institute of Menu, the Hindoostanees hold that
after the Supreme Power had created the universe he again
retired into himself, from a state of energy to one of repose.
God rested.
. Garden of Fde7i.— The idea of the Garden of Eden also.
11
162 PIKST THINGS.
appears in the writings of Hesiod. He describes the first
period of human existence as a golden age. Men lived like
gods, without pain, or care, or old age ; the fields yielded
their fruits untilled ; and every day was crowned with hap-
piness. Death comes into his account, but it was only a
painless translation to another state. The Grecian fable,
the story of the Garden of the Hesperides, and of the golden
apples guarded by a dreadful dragon, that never slept, was
probably founded on some tradition concerning the tree of
life in the Garden of Eden, and of the guard placed at 'the
entrance after man's fall. According to the fable, Hercules,
the strong man of the ancients, partly human and partly
divine, killed the dragon, and gathered the apples. This
part of the fable may have arisen from the first promise :
that the seed of the woman should bruise the head of the
serpent, the old dragon, and thus the way to the tree of life
should be again opened.
Man, one family. — The traditions of all nations, connected
even with their religions, point in some form to Noah and
his sons, as the fathers of the present race of men. Thus
uniting in their testimony that all mankind are of one blood.
Early golden age — Deterioration of the race. — The ancient
poets and philosophers speak of four successive ages through
which the world had been passing, the golden, the silver,
the brazen, and the iron. The comparative value of the
metals representing their characters. Some of them speak
of two such series ; the first beginning at creation, the sec-
(md after the deluge. That the first age of each was the
purest, and that each successive period was marked by
gradual deterioration, all history, both sacred and pro-
fane, attest most clearly. The experience of six thou-
sand years confirms the word of God, as to the constantly
falling state of man, and gives the lie to infidel teachers and
pretended moral reformers, who teach that man can elevate
himself. Instead of progressing morally or physically, all
TRADITION — THE FALL — THE SERPENT. 163
history, as well as the condition of the nations of the world
at the present day, shows that man, in proportion as he is
left to himself, and is without the influence of the Word and
the Spirit of God, has always had a tendency to greater cor-
ruption ; and is thus continually fulfilling the prophetic sen-
tence pronounced at the fall, " Dying thou shalt die."
The Fall. — The Greek fables, relate that the first woman
was made by the chief god, and gifted by all the lesser divin-
ities (hence her name Pandora, i. e., all gifts), on purpose to
punish a certain man (Prometheus, a name signifying more
cunning) for attempting to deceive the chief god about a
sacrifice. Hesiod, after elegantly describing all the various
beauties of this fair creation, entitles her " a lovely mischief
to the soul of man." To this first woman, says the poet, the
chief god (Jupiter) gave a box, desiring her to present it to
her husband ; and when he opened it, out came all sorts of
evils and diseases, which spread themselves abroad, and al-
tered the whole condition of the human race. In this we
see the relics of the tradition of Adam tempted by Eve, and
the direful consequences of sin ; the end of the fable makes
it appear that the notion of some promise connected with
the Woman was also afloat in the world. At the bottom of
Pandora's box, Hope is said to have remained, easing the
labors, and alleviating the troubles and sorrows of the
human family.
Satan — The Serpent. — In the Gothic theology, which was
brought from the East, we have an account of a celebrated
tree, which was the fountain of wisdom and knowledge, with
an infernal serpent ever gnawing at its root. The god Thor,
their middle divinity or mediator between God and man, is
said " to have bruised the head of a great serpent." In
India, two sculptured figures are yet extant in one of their
oldest pagodas, one of which represents Chrishna, an incar-
nation of Vishnu, trampling on the crushed head of the ser-
pent, while the other exhibits the serpent encircling the deity
164 FIRST THINGS.
in its foldf?, and biting his heel. In regard to the form of
the first appearance of Satan, Mr. Hardwic, after a most
elaborate search into all ancient history and tradition, says,
" There is found to be a most singular concert in east and
west, north and south, in civilized and semi-barbarous coun-
tries, in the old world and the new, not only to the fact that
serpents were somehow associated with the ruin of the hu-
man family, but that serpents so employed were vehicles of
a malignant personal spirit, by whatever name he was de-
scribed." In all nations there seems to be an instinctive
horror of serpents, and a feeling, that, without pity or re-
morse, they are to be crushed under foot.
The Deluge. — Traditions of the Deluge have been almost
universal in all ages and among all nations. Josephus speaks
of the many Gentile historians who confirmed the Mosaic
account of the deluge and the ark. Among others he quotes
Berosus, the collector of the Chaldean antiquities ; who in
his account of Zizuthrus, the first Chaldean, almost repeats
the story of Noah and the ark. After stating that Zizuthrus
and his family had been taken up to heaven and made gods,
Berosus adds, that the remains of the vessel were to be seen
in his time, on one of the mountains of Armenia, and that
people were wont to scrape the bitumen with which it had
been coated to use as charms. The Egyptians called their
most ancient vessels haris, a name given to the spot where
the ark nested ; and the model of a boat was carried about
at one of their religious festivals. The Greeks delighted in
the story of the sacred ship Argo, according to them the first
ship ever constructed ; from which our word ark is probably
derived. The Greeks, through tradition and their poets,
when their written history began, had accounts of seven dif-
ferent floods. That known as Deucalion's flood is most cele-
brated. The account given of that by Lucien is very similar
to the Mosaic account. Deucalion alone, of the whole gen-
eration, was saved with his sons and their wives in an ark ;
TEADITION — MOUNTAINS. 165
while embarking, all kinds of animals came and entered the
ark with him, and were kept in harmony and from injur-
ing him through the influence of the Deity. Traditions of
the Deluge were found among the Druids of Europe, and
among the inhabitants of America when it was first discov-
ered. Dr. Arnold observes : " All the nations who have pre-
served any traditions of the remotest ages, agree in asserting
that an elder generation had perished."
Mountains. — In the Bible history we find mountains often
mentioned, as places where sacrifices had been offered, and
special revelations from God received. On Mount Ararat,
Noah, after leaving the ark, built an altar and offered sacri-
fice. Abraham was sent to Mount Mori ah to sacrifice Isaac.
The Lord appeared to Moses on Mount Horeb, and again
to Israel, and delivered. the law on Mount Sinai. The Lord
chose Mount Zion for the site of the temple. Jesus gave the
Sermon on the Mount, retired to mountains to pray, made
Mount Olivet his favorite resort, and from a mountain as-
cended up to heaven. It is not strange, therefore, that the
use of mountains found its way into idolatrous religions. In
the Scriptures we find God's oft repeated denunciations
against the high places in Israel, on which sacrifices were
offered to the gods of the heathen. Among the heathen,
Mount Olympus was the favorite seat of the Grecian gods ;
Mount Parnassus was the haunt of the Muses. The Persians
used the highest mountains in order to worship and sacri-
fice. Mount Athos in Macedonia has been a holy mountain
from the earliest period to the present day. Almost all the
ancient nations had their high Qiountains in esteem as places
of public worship. And what is more remarkable, all of
them make one of these high mountains the abode of the first
gods, who were the fathers of the human race, and also the
place where the ark of the deluge rested. To prevent .a su-
perstitious use of mountains, or of any particular locality for
religious worship, the Lord Jesus made that memorable
166 PIEST THINGS.
reply to tlie woman of Samaria, which ever since has made
God's throne of grace accessible to man, from every part of
the earth. She had told him " Our fathers worshipped in this
mountain." His reply was, " The hour cometh when ye shall
neither in this mountain, nor jet at Jerusalem, worship the
Father," " God is a Spirit : and they that worship him must
worship in spirit and in truth." ^
The Cherubim. — When Adam and Eve were expelled
from paradise, God placed on the eastern side of the garden
certain beings, called cheruhims, to keep the way of the tree
of life.^ Moses gives no description of the form of these
beings ; not even when the clierubims were to be made for
the tabernacle. Ezekiel had visions of the cherubims, and
gives a minute description of them.^ He describes them as
compounded of four different animals, viz., the man, the bull,
the lion and the eagle : the man being the most prominent.
It is remarkable that John in his vision'' of the throne of God
in heaven, speaks of seeing four beasts, or rather, four living
creatures around the throne ; and these also were like a
man, a calf, a lion, and an eagle. So remarkable an appear-
ance, says Mr. Faber, as that of the cherubim, could not
easily be forgotten. The form of this great hieroglyphic,
the first and source of all others, was doubtless familiar to
Noah ; and the symbol was afterwards placed in the taber-
nacle. The monstrous compounds which appear so frequently
in ancient religions and history, were doubtless derived from
the cherubims. Growing out of traditions of this strange
being, according to learned men, was the celebrated dog
Cerberus, with three heads — ^^the dog, the wolf, and the lion —
and who, according to the Greeks, was the keeper of hell :
also, Hecate, or the infernal Diana, represented as having
the heads of a horse, a dog, and a lion. The Osiris of the
Egyptians, and Moloch, and Mithras were many-headed,
' John iv. 20. ' Ezek. i. 5-10; x. 8.
2 Gen. iii. 24. * Rev. ir. 6.
TRADITION — BABEL — GIANTS. 167
The Minotaur had the head of a man and the body of a bull.
In the Zendavesta of the Persians two persons appear, one
at the beginning of the old world, and the other at the be-
ginning of the new, compounded of a man, a bull, and a
horse. The celebrated Sphinx had the head of a woman, the
wings of a bird, the claws and body of a lion. In the Hin-
doo system there is a being composed of a man and an eagle,
which is placed in a pass leading to their high garden, called
Garuda ; answering to the garden of Eden ; and, it is re-
markable, the office of this creature is to prevent the approach
of serpents.
The Toioer of Babel — Farly Giants. — The Tower of Ba-
bel, according to Berosus, the Chaldean historian, was erected
by giants, who waged war with the gods, and who were at
length dispersed, and the edifice beaten down by a great
wind. In the ancient poems called the " Wars of the Ti-
tans," great giants are represented as having, in the early
ages of the world, attempted to assault heaven ; piling moun-
tain on mountain, " Pelion on Ossa," and hurling burning
rocks against the sky. In these we have traditions of the
early giants, of the rebellion of men against God, and of the
attempted building of the Tower of Babel. These fables of
the Greeks, although rejected b/ their philosophers in later
times, were received by the people ; and had their influence
in moulding their religious views.
Efid of the World. — Josephus relates a singular Jewish
tradition, having a reference to the coming destruction of
the world by fire. " The children of Seth,'' he says, " were
the inventors of that peculiar sort of wisdom which is con-
cerned with the heavenly bodies and their order ; and un-
derstanding by Adam's prediction, that the world was to be
destroyed at one time by fire, and at another time by water,
they made two pillars, one of brick, the other of stone, on
which they inscribed their discoveries, hoping that the for-
mer at least would be standing after the deluge, and transmit
168 FIEST THINGS.
their knowledge to mankind." " This," adds Josephus, " re-
mains in the land of Syria to^this day." The pillar alluded
to, and which Josephus professes to have seen, is supposed
to have been one that was erected by one of the kings of
Egypt to commemorate his victories. A belief that the
world, at some future period, would be destroyed by fire was
spread far and wide through the ancient world. The Sibyl-
line verses, whatever be their origin, had contributed much
to this. Plato tells us that the Egyptians, and, Cicero, that
the Stoics, held such a belief. Plutarch speaks of the ele-
ments of the world, as things to be burnt up with it, and to
end with time.
African Traditions. — In a communication giving an ac-
count of the theology and worship of the pagan African,
Bishop Payne, speaking of their mythology, says : " You will
share in the surprise I felt on the discovery of the resem-
blance of this system to that of the heathen in all ages, and
to some of the great truths of revelation. I will give the
account of this very much in the language in which I received
it from an aged Grebo deya, or demon-man : " In the begin-
ning, God (or Nyesoa — nye^ man, soa^ abiding, — very like
Jehovah, the Eternal One) lived on earth among men. Then
there was. no sickness, no sorrow, no death. After a time,
however, Nyesoa let fall from his hands We, witchcraft,^or
that which causeth death. A woman got hold of this : soon
a death followed. Men, dismayed, went to Nyesoa to ask
the cause. He replied that We had fallen from him, and
was in possession of a woman. She had caused the death.
He told them, moreover, that he would now direct them to
a test by which they could ascertain the guilt or innocence
of the woman, and others suspected of like crime. He
showed them the gidu-tree, and directed them to make an
infusion of the bark and administer it to the woman. If
guilty, it would cause her death ; if innocent, she would
vomit it and escape. The woman drank the mixture and
AFRICAN TRADITIONS. 169
died. Before this, however, she had succeeded in conveying
this mysterious We to her children. Thus sickness and death
overspread the world. Men became so corrupt that Nyesoa
told them he could no longer dwell among them ; and he
withdrew to heaven. Before leaving, however, he assured
them he should always take an interest in their affairs, and
that he would leave anions: them a class of men throug:h
whom they could communicate with him. This class are
the deyabo, or demon-men.''
In this narrative, continues Bishop Payne, " we have the
professedly divine origin of gidu, or ' sassa-wood,' remind-
ing one of ' the waters of jealousy,' and used all through
Central Africa as a test of witchcraft and other crimes ; —
the account, so nearly Scriptural, of God's dwelling with
men, the introduction of evil by woman, and the deyabo,
representing almost exactly Balaam and the false prophets
and oracles of all heathen countries ; — the idea being, in all
these cases, that the daimon of the Greks, — the Ku of the
Greboes, — is sent by Nyesoa, or the Supreme Being ; and
hence the responses or directions of those acting under the
influence of these spirits have a divine sanction."
The fables which appear in the first heathen -writings and
which helped to form their religious systems, were doubtless
founded, or partly so, on traditions which were then float-
ing among the nations, and which had come down the stream
of time, constantly becoming more muddy, as men perverted
or added to the original truth : some of these writings, how-
ever, appeared after the glory of the riches and wisdom of
Solomon, and doubtless some ideas of his religion, had spread
over the earth. It may be that the Greeks, as they obtained
their letters from the Phoenicians and the Hebrews, may
also have attained the foundations of some of these ideas
from that source.
CHAPTER XXXYII.
DOCTRINAL TRUTHS RETAINED AMONG THE HEATHEN — ONE GOD
— THE TRINITY — THE WORD OF GOD, THE CREATOR — GOD
MANIFEST IN THE FLESH — THE IMMORTALITY OF THE SOUL —
GHOSTS — AN ATONING SACRIFCE.
NOT only were the prominent facts of creation, and of
the world's early history, as recorded by Moses, re-
tained by all nations ; but likewise, many of those great
doctrines of revealed truth, upon a proper knowledge of
which man's happiness depends. They also retained, in
some form or other, the divinely appointed mode of approach
to God through an atoning sacrifice. Let ns now examine
the views of some of these doctrines held by the early
heathen.
One God. — ^The heathen, with their innumerable gods,
generally acknowledged one, as supreme. Homer, one
of the earliest heathen writers, speaks of Jupiter, as having
the attributes of the true God, in such expressions as these,
" O thou supreme, high throned, all height above."
" Supreme of gods, unbounded and alone."
" Father of gods and men."
Before this, Orpheus had written,
" All things were made by God,"
And Hermes, the most ancient of Egyptian writers, wrote,
" The Lord of eternity is a great God."
" It belongs to the great God to see all things,
And to be seen of none."
Referring to the existence of an eternal being, the Crea-
(IVO)
DOCTRINAL TEUTHS IN TRADITION. ITI
tor of tliB world, Aristotle said, " There is one God, the
king and father of all ; and many gods, sons of gods, co-
reigners with God ; these things both the Greeks and bar-
barians alike affirm." Plutarch said, Though there were
one, fifty, or an hundred worlds, they were all subject to one
supreme, solitary, and independent God. He also informs
us that the. inhabitants of Thebais, one of the ancient divi-
sions of Egypt, never would acknowledge any mortal god ;
but worshipped an unmade, etemtil Deity. The Stoics held
one God supreme and eternal, while the world was full of
gods and demons : the latter created by the one God, and
one day to be destroyed by him. Most of the ancient
philosophers considered the gods as being part of the
Supreme ; and used the term gods and god as synonymous.
The Buddha and Brahma of India were the same with Ju-
piter. Their votaries, who never mingle on other occasions,
will meet and worship together at the dreadful feast of Jug-
gernaut or Jagan-Nath, " The Lord of the earth,^^ their great
common Lord. The American Indians retained so clear a
view of the one Great and Good Spirit (though they also
worship the evil one), and they were also so free from the
cruelties connected with the idolatries of the ancient world,
that some have supposed them to be remnants of the lost ten
tribes of Israel. This general acknowledgment of the Su-
preme God, the poet Pope, more celebrated as a poet than
as a^ Christian, refers to in his universal prayer,
" Father of all, in every age.
In every clime adored
By saint, by savage, and by sage,
Jehovah, Jove, or Lord."
Mixed with these apparently clear views of the one Great
God, these first heathen writers introduced the most ridicu-
lous fables : which succeeding writers added to, and per-
verted, until the gods they worshipped, by the characters
172 FIRST THINGS.
they gave tliem, and the actions they attributed to them,
were monsters of iniquity, and more vile and licentious than
the Voorst of men.
The Trinity. — Among the names which God has employed
to reveal himself to us is that Great Name, " The Father,
Son, and Holy Ghost f three persons in one God. It is
remarkable, that the doctrine of the Trinity has been re-
"tained, or has found its way in some form, in almost all the
great religions of the earth.*
The histories of Adam and of Noah, and of the three sons
of each, which are named in the Bible, doubtless contributed
to this. The fathers of the race were united by tradition,
and were looked up to and worshipped as their gods through-
out the whole heathen world. Homer, who systematized
the pagan mythology, clearly shows this. After speaking of
Saturn and Rhea, the first beings of the earth, he makes one
of their sons, Neptune, say,
" Three brother Deities from Saturn came,
And ancient Rhea, earth's immortal dame.
Assigned by lot — our triple rule we know."
These three were Jupiter, Neptune, and Pluto ; the great
gods of the ancient heathen, though called by different
names. The rest were lesser gods.
The Persians had also their threefold distribution of the
Deity ; assigning to Oromasdes, Mithras, and Aramanes
different works ; calling Mithras the Mediator or middle.
The Hindoos have their first great father, Brahm ; an abso-
lute unity beyond the grasp of human understanding. As
the creator, he is called Brahma ; as the preserver, Vishnu ;
and as the renovator, Siva ; these three relations of the di-
vine being constitute the trinity, Timourti^ of the Hindoos.
The Tartars worshipped a deity under three several names.
The Buddhists, in China, have also a triplicating father.
The Goths had their Odin, Yile and Ye, sons of Bur a, the
DOCTRINAL TRUTHS IN TRADITION. 173
offspring of the mysterious Con — that is, born of the Ark.
The Chaldeans said, " In the whole world shineth forth a
Triad or Trinity, the head whereof is Monod or Unity."
The Orphic system had its Phanns, Uranus, and Chronus.
Pythagoras taught " The fi^rst one or unity is above all essen-
ces ; the secoiid is ideas ^ and intelligible ; the third is the
soul of the world, and partakes of the first two."
The ancient philosophers spoke of the three operations of
the great Deity in such a way, that in after times, many of
the* early Christians were misled to think their systems dif-
fered but little from the Bible.
The Word of God, the Creator.— TliQ Bible tells us, " In the
beginning was the word, and the word was God ;" " all
things were made by him." ^ The heathen obtained some
knowledge of this. In India, Yach or speech, is the active
power of Brahma. In Egypt, while Amanis was the hidden
god, Phtha was the god by whom he produced the world, —
was the manifested god. In Persia, Ormazd, the good,
created the world by Plonovu, the word.
God manifest in the flesh. — The Bible adds, "The word
was made flesh." ^ This " great mystery," " Emmanuel," ^
" God manifest in the flesh," " has been a part of all reli-
gions : heathen as well as Christian. All the gods of the
heathen were once men, or had at times assumed the hu-
man form. When the Apostle Paul, while traveling with
Barnabas, had cured an impotent man, the people of Lyca-
onia cried out, " The gods are come down to us in the like-
ness of men," calling one Jupiter, and the other Mercurius,
they wanted to offer sacrifices to them.^ The transforma-
tions or incarnation of Vishnu, the second person of the
Hindoo trinity, form the principal subject of their sacred
books.
Not only have the early appearances of the Creator re-
» John i 1, 8, 14, "" John i. 14. ^ Matt. i. 23
* 1 Tim iii. 16. ^ Acts xiv. 12.'
174 FIRST THINGS.
tained a place in tlie heathen systems of mythology, but the
promise of a great Deliverer to come was also preserved in
some form throughout the world ; gaining strength with
time, until Jesus, " the desire of all nations," came. Thus,
while Simeon, and Anna, and other pious Jews were looking
for him, we see, from the East, wise men, having seen his
star, come to worship him ; ^ and from the West, we hear the
heathen poet Yirgil, while trying to flatter the emperor Au-
gustus that he was the person referred to in the Cumsen
verses, saying,
" The last great age, foretold by sacred rhymes,
Renews its finished course. Saturnian times
Roll round again."
" A golden progeny from heaven descends.
The jarring nations he in peace shall bind,
And with paternal virtues rule mankind."
The immortality of the soul. — Every man feels that he has
a living soul ; and he knows in his conscience that there is
a coming judgment. Some of the memorable warnings of
Him, who taught in love, and who came to save, are : " Fear
Him, which after He hath killed hath power to cast into
Hell ; yea, I say unto you, Fear Him." ^ " For the hour is
coming, in which all that are in the grave shall hear His
voice, and shall come forth ; they that have done good, unto
the resurrection of life ; and they that have done evil, unto
the resurrection of damnation." ^
A belief in the immortality of the soul, and of a state
of future rewards and punishments, has come down through
all ages, and through all religions. Homer, in his Iliad,
makes his hero, Achilles, say,
" 'Tis true, 'tis certain, man though dead retains
Part of himself, — the immortal mind remains."
Apoldnius, one of the philosophers, declared : " As to the
» Matt. 11. 2. . ^. Luke xii. 5. » John v. 28.
DOCTRINAL TRUTHS IN TRADITION. 175
opinion that good men should be rewarded after death,
he could not reach either the author or original of it."
Cicero says, " We conclude, from the consent of all mankind,
that the soul is immortal." Seneca says, " The consent of
all mankind, in their hopes and fears of a future state, is of
no small moment to us." All legislators and philosophers,
in every age and land, have made it a part of their system,
and the founders of every form of religious worship have
done the same. Such rare exceptions as the Sadducees of
old and the few scattered infidels, who are generally looked
upon with abhorrence, serving to confirm the rule.
The translation of Enoch, shortly after the death of Adam,
was not forgotten. Accounts of it appear, in some form or
other, in almost every system of religion adopted by the
heathen.
The doctrine of the transmigration of souls, which is con-
nected with a belief in immortality, is still held by a large
portion of the earth's population. The indistinct knowledge
which the heathen retained in their traditions, of the crea-
tion, of the deluge, and of the new world, gave them a notion
of a succession of worlds ; and led to the belief that Noah
and his three sons were a re-appearance of Adam and his
three sons, Cain, Abel and Seth ; these being the only ones
mentioned.
The belief that the spirits of the departed have some
ethereal form after death, and that they sometimes manifest
themselves to the eyes of men, has prevailed, in all time,
throughout all nations. This is very remarkable, consider-
ing that the appearances of Samuel to Saul, and of Moses
and Elias to the apostles at the transfiguration, are the only
well authenticated cases upon which to ground a belief in
ghosts. Tlie learned Dr. Johnson, speaking of the univer-
sality of the belief in ghosts, said, that after a careful inves-
tigation he had never been able to find an authentic case of
a ghost having been seen. The fact, that such a belief has
176 FIRST THINGS.
always been universal, shows an involuntary consent of all
mankind to the truth, that the soul is immortal.
Sacrifices. — We have already noticed that in the first act
of worship, after the Fall, God accepted the offering of a lamb
in sacrifice, and also that sacrifices have had a place in every
religion since that time. Let us now examine the lieathen
accounts concerning the origin of the sacrifices they offered.
Plato, the philosopher, says, " At first no animals were of-
fered, but only the fruits of the earth and trees." Such may
have been the thank-oft^erings of man before he sinned ; such
were the sacrifices offered by self-righteous Cain. His des-
cendants and followers doubtlessly imitated him, but after
the flood bloody sacrifices soon became general.
That sacrifices were a divine appointment is one of the
most universal traditions prevalent among men. Mr. Faber,
after a thorough examination of the subject, af&rms, that
" Throughout the whole world he finds a notion prevalent
that the gods could only be appeased by bloody sacrifices ;
and its universality proves that all nations have borrowed it
from the same common source. There is no heathen people
which can specify a time when it was without sacrifice. All
have equally had it, from a time which cannot be reached
by their genuine records." One Egyptian tradition makes
Moth or Taut, supposed to be Adam, the inventor of sacri-
fices. Another says, Osiris, supposed to be Noah, is the god
who first instructed men in them. The Italians were said
to have been taught by Janus, the first father. His double
face, looking forward and backward, is supposed to refer to
Noah, " the child of the old world and the orphan of the
new," as knowing the past and the future. According to
the Babylonians, Zizuthus, on quitting the ark, built an
altar and sacrificed to the gods. The same was said of
the Grecian Deucalion. The same of the British Hu, who
sailed over the flood with seven companions, and was em-
phatically called the sacrificer. The Cliinese Fohi raised
DOCTRINAL TEUTHS IN TRADITION. ITT
seven kinds of animals for sacrifices to the Great Spirit.
All these point to Adam or Noah, though called by various
names.
Caesar, the infidel of Rome, says, that the Druids of Gaul
held, that unless the life of man was given for the forfeited
life of man, the Deity of the immortal gods could not be ap-
peased. The Athenians and Massilians, in their sacrifice
of a man for the welfare of the state, show that they had an
idea of a human redeemer. They loaded him with curses
and prayed that the wrath of the gods might fall upon his
devoted head, and thus be diverted from the rest of the citi-
zens. They solemnly called upon him to be their ransom
and their redemption, life for life, and body for body. After
this ceremony they cast him into the sea as an offering to
Neptune.
In the Indian mythology, we learn that Menu, their great
father, had three sons, one of whom was slain in the act of
performing sacrifice. The slaughtered brother was conse-
crated as a god and worshipped by the Thessalonians with
bloody hands. The death of Abel was, doubtless, the origin
of this tradition.
Sanchoniathon, the ancient historian of Phoenicia, speaks
of the sacrifice by the god Chronus (the same as El or Ilus)
of his son to his lather Ouranus, and that the example was
followed in the nation by the establishment of an expia-
tory sacrifice, which was considered as peculiarly mystical,
having reference to things yet to come. The learned my-
thologist, Mr. Bryant, after giving a full account of this,
concludes, " According to this, El, the supreme deity, whose
associates were the Elohim, was in process of time to have a
son, well beloved, his only begotten. He was to be offered
up as a sacrifice to the father, by way of satisfaction and
redemption, to atone for their sins and avert the just ven-
geance of God." Mr. Bryant leaves it to his readers to say
whether this does not refer to an early tradition of Christ.
12
178 FIRSTTHINGS.
It is a lamentable fact that all these relics of original
truth, which were retained by the heathen in their mytho-
logy, were mixed up with fabulous traditions and gross super-
stition, and with an idolatrous and cruel worship which
constantly grew more and more vile, licentious and corrupt.
The seed of the Serpent has ever perverted the truth ; doing
so even in the visible Church of Christ. Peter speaks of
certain persons as wresting some things in the epistles of
Paul and " also the other scriptures to their own destruc-
tion." ^ The Pharisees, the most professedly religious among
the Jews, the then visible Church of God, put Jesus, who
was "The Truth" itself, to death. Though they sat in
Moses' seat, Jesus speaks of them as "children of the
Devil." ^ Since that time all history shows that there has
been a succession of his children, not only among the hea-
then, but also in high places, loudly proclaiming that they^
are " The Church," while they are " holding the truth in
unrighteousness," and covering up with their traditions the
pure Word of God, and are also ever zealous, like their
father, to destroy them who preach, or who live, Christ.
* 2 Pet. iil 16. " John viiL 44.
CHAPTER XXXVIII.
THE ANCIENT ORACLES — THE SIBYLLINE BOOKS. '
S man ever since the Fall has shown anxiety in regard
to the life to come ; so also, in all ages and places,
we find him troubled with doubts and fears as to his destiny
in this life ; and seeking to pry into futurity by means of
some mysterious agency. We find seers and soothsayers,
wizards and witches, astrologers and fortune-tellers, have
always abounded. Whence is this? Among other things
the ancient heathen were in the habit of consulting public
oracles. How did these originate? Bishop Meade says,
" We believe there is nothing very general in the world
which does not point to something which existed among
God's people, either before or after the flood.'' The ear-
liest use of the word oracle in Scripture was in reference to
the covering of the ark or chest in which the law of Moses
was shut up, and from above which God manifested his will,
and delivered responses to Moses. Dreams and visions, sucli
as God sent to the patriarchs ; and the interpretation of
dreams, such as Joseph and Daniel were inspired to give to
Pharaoh, Darius, and Nebuchadnezzar ; were also oracles,
or answers from God. The answers to the high priest by
means of certain signs and appearances on the Urim and
Thummim, which Moses had put in the breastplate,^ were the
oracles of God among the Jews. This was consulted on all
important occasions. The Scriptures are called the " lively,''
or living, " oracles " ^ of God, in opposition to the false or
dead oracles of the heathen. According to these oracles of
*Lev. viii. 8; Ex. xxviii. 30; N^um. xxvii. 21. '^ Acts vii. 38; Rom. iii. 2.
{119)
180 PIEST THINGS.
God, Christians are now directed to speak ; ^ and forsaking
all other oracles, they are, for their present and future wel-
fare, to consult these only.^ Thanks be to God ! they are
always livdng ; always open for consultation.
The knowledge that God has, from the beginning, held
constant communications with His people, has been preserved
in some form by all nations. All men feel the want of
such a counselor. This want of man, Satan, the god of this
world, has, in many ways, endeavored to supply. The an-
cient heathen oraches were one of these ways ; and some of
them became very celebrated. That of Jupiter Dodona in
Epirus ; of Apollo at Delphi, in Phocis, near Mount Par-
nassus ; and the temple of Jupiter Ammon iii the deserts of
Libya, were the principal ones. Homer mentions the two
former only. In process of time they became so multiplied
that there were not less than twenty-five oracles in the small
province of Boeotia, These were consulted not only on im-
portant public questions, but likewise on the affairs of pri-
vate life. According to the heathen tradition. Mount Par-
nassus was once tenanted by a mighty serpent, which had
the power of speech and delivered oracular responses from
a sacred cave. This Delphic serpent, which was called
Python, was, according to the tradition, slain by Apollo.
From this fabulous monster the name Pythius was communi-
cated to the god, and Pythia, or Pythoness, to the priest-
ess, who, after receiving the vapor of inspiration through the
cleft of a rock, delivered the responses.
The oracular temples were generally located in deep
forests or steep, craggy places. The tripod or chair, on
which the priest or priestess was seated, was sometimes over
the mouth of a cavern ; the vapor issuing from it ^as said
to have an inspiring or infuriating effect on those who were
upon it. The oracles were consulted by all classes ; even
by philosophers and kings. E-ich presents were made to
* 1 Pet. iv. 11. "" Deut. xviil 19, 12.
THE ANCIENT ORACLES. 181
propitiate them. Bribes were sometimes used to procure
favorable answers. Answers were also sometimes specially
obtained for the purpose of stimulating credulous soldiers or
people, when certain objects were to be gained.
Eusebius says that there were not less than six hundred
authors among the heathen themselves who wrote against
the reality of the oracles. In the Christian Church learned
men, in all ages, have taken different views of them. Some
believing them to be nothing but human ingenuity and fraud,
while others contended that they were inspired by the father
of lies.
That they did deliver some answers as to future events,
of a most remarkable character, cannot be denied. Among
the many responses given it would be strange, however, if
this did not sometimes happen. The responses were always
in some enigmatical or ambiguous form ; so shaped, that the
credit of the oracle might be sustained, whatever might be
the event. Oftentimes the answer was to be inferred, not
from anything said, but from the flight of birds, or some ap-
pearance in the sky, or some unnatural sound ; so that all
was uncertainty. However, there must have been something
very, remarkable in their character and conduct, to enable
them to maintain their reputation and influence for a thou-
sand successive years. We are reminded of Jacob's prevail-
ing prayer, " I will not let Thee go, except Thou bless me," ^
by such instances as the following : while supplicating Apollo
at Delphi, during the war with Xerxes, the Athenian mes-
sengers said, " We will never depart from thy sanctuary
without a favorable answer, but will remain here until we
die." The responses of the oracles certainly had the effect
of stimulating to the most daring deeds of defensive war
that heathen history has ever furnished.
Many of their xesponses are recorded by the ancient
heathen historians. The famous answers to Croesus, king
- . ^ Gen. ?ixxii. 26. - .
182 FIEST THINGS.
of Lydia, when about to engage in a war with Persia, are
worthy of notice. Croesus, according to Herodotus, being
doubtful of the oracle, determined first to try its superhu-
man knowledge ; and, therefore, sent a messenger, who, at
the end of a hundred days, v/as to enquire what the occupa-
tion of the king at that time would be. The reply of the
god was J " That he smelt the odor of a lamb boiled with a
tortoise, while brass was at once above and beneath it ; " and
such, it was said, was actually the occupation of Croesus at
the time. Croesus then sent to inquire of the Oracle wheth-
er he would be victorious in the proposed war ; to which
this ambiguous answer was returned ; " That he would over-
throw a great empire." Croesus, wishing to be yet more
sure, sent again ; and inquired whether his power would
ever be diminished. The Oracle in reply advised the mon-
arch to consult his safety by flight, " Whenever a mule should
reign over the Medes." Croesus understood this as insuring
him success ; as a mule could not be king. But it turned
out, that the mule was Cyrus, the Medo-Persian, who united
the two kingdoms of Medea and Persia, and conquered
Croesus. Thus also Croesus overthrew a great empire ;
but that empire was his own. In any event, with both
answers the credit of the oracle was secure.
In examining the question, whether the ancient Oracles
received superhuman assistance and inspiration from the
great enemy of mankind and father of lies, Bishop Meade
refers to such facts as the temptation of our first parents by
Satan in the form of a serpent ; of his putting it into the
heart of Judas to betray our Lord, and into the heart of
Ananias to lie unto the Holy Ghost. He then adds, " We
need not fear to admit that this wise and artful being might
be permitted by God to create some mischief among men by
means of Oracles, and the superhuman answers made through
them." That the devil has exerted great power through the
priests of false religions, we may infer from the facts record-
THE ANCIENT ORACLES* 183
edin Scripture concerning the rod of Moses. When it was
turned into a serpent, the magicians of Egypt did the same. ■
Simon, the sorcerer, who bewitched the people of Samaria
with his sorceries, ma}^ have been enabled by Satan to do
some wonderful things. " We read," says Mr. Faber, "in the
Acts of the Apostles, of a young female who was possessed
of a spirit of divination, according to our version, but with
a spirit of Python, according to the original Greek. This
spirit enabled her to utter certain oracular responses, which
brought her masters much gain. When she beheld Paul and
his companions, she cried, saying ' These men are the ser-
vants of the Most High God, which shew unto us the way of
salvation. Paul being grieved, turned and said to the spirit,
I command thee in the name of Jesus Christ come' out of her.
And he came out the same hour.' ' Now, according to the
plain import of this narrative, the young female was pos-
sessed by an evil spirit, which compelled her to utter
responses of an oracular nature. The spirit was an intelli-
gent and living agent. And he is denominated a spirit of
Python, which is the precise name of the Delphic serpent which
delivered Oracles from a sacred cave in Mount Parnassus.
Putting these matters together," says Mr. Faber, " we certainly
seem to collect that there was something more than mere
juggling imposture in the responses of the ancient oracles."
Bishop Meade adds : " From a careful examination of many
of the most judicious, as well as learned writers, ancient and
modern, I find such to have been their prevailing impres-
sions, though there be some diversity of sentiment among
them."
Though great difference of opinion prevailed among the
ancients in regard to the reliability of the Oracles, still they
continued to be held in high repute until the Christian era.
They then rapidly declined ; so that even that at Delphi
was closed. The most learned among the heathen were at
* Acts xvi 6. ,
FIRST THINGS.
a loss to account for this closing of their ancient Oracles. One
of them, Porphyry, says, " Since Jesus began to be worshipped,
no man has received any public help or benefit from the gods."
THE SIBYLLINE BOOKS.
A set of extraordinary books, under the name of The Ora-
cles of the Cumcen Sibyl, were offered for sale, at an early
period of Rome, to King Tarquinius Superbus at an immense
price. It is said that there were originally nine books offered
by the Sibyl : that on each refusal on the part of the king
to purchase them, one of them was burnt, until six of them
were thus destroyed ; and then Tarquinius purchased the
remaining three for the price originally demanded for the
nine. These books were held in such high veneration that
they were kept in a stone chest under ground in the temple
of Jupiter Capitolinus, and were committed to the care of
two chosen officers, who consulted the books only at the
special command of the senate : and this not to learn future
events, but what worship was required by the gods when
they manifested their wrath by national calamities or prodi-
gies. The officers in charge of the books were enjoined to
keep their contents from the public under heavy penalties.
Eighty- two years before the birth of Christ, the temple in
which they were contained was burned, and they were con-
sumed. The Roman senate thought it of so much importance
to repair the loss, that they sent persons into various coun-
tries to collect the fragments of the books, which were sup^
posed to be in existence, and the most learned men of Rome
were employed to select from the returns what they judged
to be most authentic.
The Sibylline prophecies were originally of Teukrian or
early Trojan descent. They were in full circulation in the
reign of Croesus ; and the promises of future empire which,
they made to ^neas escaping from the flames of Troy into
Italy, were remarkably realized by Rome.
THE SIBYLLINE BOOKS. 185
Bishop Horseley, in his treatise " On the Prophecies of the
Messiah Dispersed Among the Heathen," speaks of the cele-
brated Sibylline books, as containing some of those ancient
traditions and prophecies of a great Deliverer who was to
come, and which were floating through the world during the
patriarchal age, not merely in the family of Abraham, but in
other lines. There was certainly a great resemblance be-
tween some things contained in these books as to the great
Deliverer, and those in the Scriptures as to the Messiah.
We have already noticed Virgil's quotation from them on
this subject. Julius Csesar, through his friends, wished to
have it believed that he was the person alluded to in the
Sibylline books, as a means of obtaining the kingly govern-
ment of Rome ; but Cicero, who had access to these docu-
ments, and who was opposed to Caesar's elevation, denied
that they were prophecies, alleging that they were not fren-
zied enough in their style to be the work of prophets ; but
he bears testimony to their excellence by saying, " Let us
then adhere to the prudent practice of our ancestors ; let us
keep the Sibyl in religious privacy. These writings," he said,
"are indeed rather calculated to extinguish than to propagate
^superstition." Bishop Horseley says, that " these prophecies,
wherever they might be found, could be of no other than a
divine original.'^
CHAPTER XXXIX.
THE ANCIENT MYSTERIES — FREEMASONS.
rr^HERE is something connected with what is considered
JL mysterious or supernatural which immediately attracts
attention. This is especially the case, if in the imagination
the mystery is connected with the spiritual world. When
we consider our relations to the unseen, to God, to angels,
ana to demons, it is not strange that this feeling everywhere
prevails, and that it has done so ever since the Fall. The
moment we leave revelation everything becomes a mystery.
All the revelations made to us in the word of God ; of
Himself^ — of His incarnation^ — of the plan of salvation^ — •
of the resurrection,* etc., are spoken of in the Scriptures as
revealed "mysteries." Man never could have discovered
them ; never could have imagined them. And even when he
hears of them, the natural man, unless born again of the.
Holy Ghost,^ cannot understand them. Ministers are called
*' stewards of the mysteries of God." ^ Our Lord told his
disciples, " It is given unto you to know the mysteries of the
kingdom of heaven, but to them not given." ^
It is not surprising, therefore, that Satan has in all ages
taken advantage of man's natural ignorance of the unseen
world, and of his thirst for the mysterious : and among the
many means of leading his followers astray, has used pre-
tended religious myst'sries and oracles, table-movings, spirit-
rappings, etc.
* 1 Cor, ii. T; Col. ii. 2. ' 1 Tim. iii. 16.
«» Eph. vi. 19 ; Col. i. 26, 27. * 1 Cor. xv. 51.
» 1 Cor. ii. 10, 14: John iii. 5. " 1 Cor. iv. 1. ' Matt. xiii. 11.
(186)
THE ANCIENT MYSTERIES. ' 187
Among the ancients in different parts of the world there
were secret celebrations, known as the Greater and the Les-
ser mysteries* All might be admitted into the latter ; com-
paratively few into the former. The greater mysteries were
those of the Cabiri, the Eleusinian, the Bacchic, the Samo-
thracian, and the Mithraic. They were performed, with
many religious ceremonies, in dark caves and grottos, or in
the lower apartments of great temples, always with the light
excluded so as to require lamps. The first thing done in the
initiation of new members was to administer an oath ; then
whatever could be effected by alternate darkness and light,
sweet sounds and discordant ones, lovely and dismal scenes,
hymns and songs, gods and goddesses passing in review be-
fore the eyes — things, as one said, " most horrible and most
ravishingly pleasant" — was adopted to frighten and delight.
The existence of God and the gods, of a future state, and
some facts in creation and in the early history of man, are
said to have been some of the subjects represented in these
mysteries. Plato says, " It was the end and drift of initia-
tion to restore the soul to that state from which it fell." In
time there was a general desire to be initiated ; and a pre-
mium was charged for becoming so. Even children were
initiated. In their first and purest state, the ancient myste-
ries are said to have been designed to inculcate a holy and
virtuous life, in order to a happy immortality. As is apt to
be the case with secret societies, all of the mysteries, by rea-
son of their secresy, became abominably corrupt : so. much
so, that, after being ridiculed on the public stage, they were
at length required to be suppressed by public authority.
St. Augustine, speaking of the mysteries, says, "There
were many truths which it was inconvenient to the State to
be generally known ; and many things, though false, it was
expedient the people should generally believe ; therefore the
Greeks shut up their mysteries in the silence of their sacred
enclosures." Herodotus, in his history, speaks very freely
188 FIRST THINGS. :
at times of the follies of the Grecian stories and worship.
Of some religious rites, however, he dares not give the ex-
planation. Speaking of the god Pan, he says, " Why they
represent him in such a way I had rather not mention."
Speaking of the blows the priests in Egypt inflicted on them-
selves at the great festival of Bubastis, he says, " But for
whom they thus beat themselves, it were impious for me to
divulge.'' The old Orphic poet wrote,
" To these alone I speak, whom nameless rites
Have rendered meet to listen. Close the doors
And carefully exclude each wretch profane.
Lest impious curiosity pollute
Our sacred orgies."
In the Egyptian mysteries of Osiris, an ark, carried about
by the priests, was a leading symbol in the ceremonies.
The Phoenicians, in celebrating the mysteries of Cabiri, also
used a consecrated ark. A sacred ark was likewise used in
the mysteries of Bacchus ; and the same symbol appeared in
the mysteries of other nations. Learned writers on this sub-
ject consider the mysteries of the Cabiri as instituted in
honor of Noah and his three sons ; the latter being sometimes
called Dioscori or Cabiri : and that all the mysteries em-
braced some memorials of the Deluge, and of the events im-
mediately succeeding it. It may be that the Ark of the
Covenant, carried by the Israelites into Canaan, may also
have led to the adoption of that symbol among the religious
rites of some of the heathen.
Another prominent symbol, used in the celebration of the
mysteries, and carried about in the haris or ark, was the
" mystic Qgg,^^ In the heathen writings, and in their hiero-
glyphics, the mystic Qgg appears in connection with the ark
and the delyge. It is said to have floated on the ocean dur-
ing the deluge, and that out of ifc was born a new world. It
is sometimes the world itself, and sometimes the great pro-
lific father or mother of all things.
THE FREEMASONS. 189
One cannot help being struck with the many points of re-
semblance between the ancient mysteries and a secret society
still existing among ns, the Freemasons : a society of very
ancient date, which some of its advocates pretend to trace
up to the great master-builder Solomon ; and some to a still
higher date, connecting it with the builders of Babel. All
the most remarkable buildings of Greece, Egypt, and Asia
Minor, have been ascribed to the Cabirian or Cyclopean
architects ; and the present Freemasons claim it as their
privilege to preside over the commencement of great build-
ings. The learned Mr. Faber says, " This society is proba-
bly a fragment of those orgies which have prevailed all the
world over, and have come to us through the Knights Tem-
plar." One of the main objects of this society is mutual
support and assistance among its members : their secret
signs enabling them to recognize one another. All the ob-
jects of true charity, however, can be accomplished without
the dangers and evils generally connected with secret asso-
ciations. The Gospel encourages no secret organizations.
Our Lord says, " Every one that doeth evil hateth the light." ^
He requires of his followers an open profession : and enjoins
upon his disciples to " love one another," ^ and to " do good
unto all men, especially unto them who are of the household
of faith." 3
John iii, 20. ' Jolin xiii. 34. '^ Gal. vi. 10.
CHAPTER XL.
FIRST HEATHEN POETS — HOMER — HESIOD.
SEVERAL centuries after tlie writings of Moses, and of
the book of Job, itself a poem of the highest order, had
appeared, the literature of Greece commenced with the writ-
ings of her early poets. These first heathen poets introduced
in their allegories, mixed with much fable, the events recorded
by Moses ; accounts of the creation of the world, of the
first God or gods, and the early history of man before and
after the deluge. Some of them were therefore called di-
vine poets. The term vates, or prophets, was applied to
them. The most celebrated were Musceus, Orpheus, Linus,
AmpMon and Hermes, They are supposed to have lived
from 1,400 to 1,250 years before Christ.
Orpheus, or the author of the Orphic verses, whoever he
was, the authorship beinj>; doubtful, had more scriptural
views than the others. These views of truth became more
and more obscured by the fictions of the later poets. The
same darkening of the truth is noticeable in the writings of
the successive celebrated philosophers of Greece, of Persia,
and of China. Plato, one of these philosophers, acknow-
ledges, that " the nearer the originals the truer ; " and, " the
higher we go up to the ages nearest creation, the more visi-
ble the traces of truth." " These things, however," he says,
" were wrapt up in the fables of the poets ; that he could
only try to make the- best use of them until some one came
to explain them." Speaking of the traditions of the eastern
countries, Plato said, " Their knowledge of the Deity was
derived from the gods j " " the ancients, who lived nearer to
(190)
FIRST HEATHEN POETS. 191
the gods than we, have transmitted it unto ns.'^ He speaks
of Adam's state of innocence under the fable of Saturn's
golden age, but adds that " we want a fit interpreter of the
fable."
The tribes, which had settled in Greece, were in compar-
ative barbarism and ignorance, when their early poets, by
their verses and instructions, contributed to their elevation.
This is probably referred to when these poets are spoken
of as taming wild beasts by their harps and lyres, and their
verses. -
Several centuries after these early poets had passed away,
there appeared in Greece, at about the same time, the cele-
brated poets Homer and Hesiod : who, according to Herod-
otus, lived not more than four hundred years before his day.
This, at the furthest, reaches back to 850 years before
Christ ; which would be nearly two centuries after Solomon
had spoken " three thousand proverbs : and had written a
thousand and five songs ; and, because of his wisdom, his
fame was in all nations round about."' We might well
wonder, that clearer views of the God of Solomon did not
spread at the same time, did we not know the tendency of
man, as instanced for a time by Solomon himself, to idolatry.
The writings of Homer, and of Hesiod, are the first heathen
writings in the world which have come down to us in perfect
form ; the earlier ones coming in fragments only.
Homer was called the " strolling bard," because of his
travels through so many countries. His Iliad gives an ac-
count of the siege of Troy, and his Odyssey, an account of
the wanderings of Ulysses from Troy to Ithaca. These first
heathen poems excel all other poems which have since ap-
peared in heathen literature ; and for nearly three thousand
years have excited the admiration of all learned men.
Combining the information they gathered by traveling in
the neighboring countries with the ideas derived from their
* 1 Kings iv. 31, 3g.
192 FIEST THINGS.
earlier poets, Homer and Hesiod classified the gods ; adding
many things unknown before : and thus formed the system
of the great pagan mythology of the ancient Greeks and
Romans. It is thought that Homer must have read all the
pooks of Moses, and borrowed many passages from them.
The principal facts recorded by Moses reappear in the
works of Hesiod and Homer in a corrupted form.
Speaking of Homer, Mr. Pope, his translator, says,
" Though he has some very low thoughts, yet he has more
noble and excellent ones than any other writer : his style
bears a greater resemblance to the sacred writers than any
others, and his writings a remarkable parity with Scrip-
ture." A general spirit of piety pervades his works ; we
find in them much of divine truth, though perverted. There
is a constant acknowledgment of the gods; and man's de-
pendance upon them is shown by the continued offering of
prayers and sacrifices ; particularly before engaging in bat-
tle, or entering on any great enterprise. The principle
which pervades the poem is,
" Those who revere the gods, tht gods will bless,"
He speaks of man's dependence on some superior power thus,
" If thou hast strength, 'twas Heaven tliat strength bestowed,
For know, vain man, that valor is from God :
'Tis man's to fight, but Heaven to give success."
Homer's accounts of God and of the gods, their origin and
their character, are confused and contradictory. At times
he ascribes attributes to Jupiter which would make him
equal to the eternal and self-existent God as set forth by
Moses : speaking of him, as the
" Supreme of gods, unbounded and alone;"
" Ever just and true : "
and making him say,
" If I but stretch this hand,
I heave the gods, ihe ocean and the land.'*
HOMER — HESIOD. 193
" And what I speak is Fate."
" And Fate our word obeys."
While at other times, he speaks of Jupiter as having an
earthly origin and birth ; and also, the basest of human pas-
sions. Such contradictions constantly occur, likewise, in all
the heathen mythologists and philosophers ; throwing their
systems of theology into confusion. The heathen could
not comprehend an eternal God ; nor imagine a pure One.
Homer wrote also a number of hymns to the gods. After
his death, temples were built and sacrifices offered to him.
Hesiod gives us the first regular heathen history of crea-
tion, of the gods, and of the hero-gods : the cosmogony,
theogony and heroology, which were according to the pre-
vailing traditions of his day, or according to his own fancy.
His account of the gods was afterwards denounced by Plato,
Socrates and others, as derogatory to the gods and injuri-
ous to men. Hesiod professed to write under the inspiration
of the Muses. His accounts of creation and of the early
facts in the world's history are evidently founded on the
Mosaic history. Passing by, and leaving out, God, the
Creator, Hesiod makes Chaos, first ; and next, the earth ;
and then by means of Love, night appears ; and day or light
from darkness ; then the heavenly bodies are born from the
earth ; and, last of all, from Coelus and Terra, the heaven
and the earth, Saturn, the first of the gods, is born. Many
facts in the early history of mankind are also plainly re-
ferred to by him. In his description of the different ages
he speaks of man's first estate of purity and happiness ; then,
of a degenerate race " by angry Jove engulfed ; " and then
of a third, a race of " many-languaged men." Hesiod speaks
of the share woman had in bringing evils on the human
race, thus : at the instigation of Jupiter, Yulcan
** Moulded from the yielding clay
A bashful virgin's image ;
33
194 FIRST THINGS.
And lo ! from her descend the tender sex
Of woman : a pei'nicious kind ;
A bane to men ;
111 helpmates of intolerable toils." *
We do not know what Hesiod's experience was with the
fair sex ; or whether he was an old bachelor ; but, at all
events, he was a heathen ; for he goes on to say,
" The name Pandora to the maid was given ;
For all the gods conferred a gifted grace
To crown this mischief of the mortal race."
Then comes the account of the introduction of evil into the
world through woman ; who, though forbidden to do it,
through curiosity, open a casket containing all the ills of life.
" The woman's hands an ample casket bear,
She lifts the lid, she scatters ills in air;
Hope sole remained within, nor took her flight.
Beneath the casket's verge concealed from sight."
A reference, doubtless, to the promised seed of the woman,
the Messiah, the Hope of the world.
* Elton's translation.
CHAPTER XLI.
FIRST HEATHEN PHILOSOPHERS — THALES — PYTHAGORAS — SO-
CRATES — PLATO — ARISTOTLE — ZOROASTER — LAOU-TSE —
CONFUCIUS.
OD'S history of creation, by the hand of Moses, and the
_ philosophical speculations of Job and his friends, had
been nearly a thousand years in the world ; and during all
that time God had been confirming his written word by
miracles, and by preserving a chosen people, whose religious
rites kept continually commemorating the facts spoken of in
that word ; when a succession of men appeared in Greece
and other countries, who, to this day, are celebrated as phil-
osophers. Some of these philosophers were evidently, as
their name implies, " lovers of wisdom." To acquire know-
ledge, they traveled through all the great civilized nations
then existing ; examining their religions, their traditions,
historical monuments, &c. They obtained thus some ideas
of the true God. Their codes of morals, their speculations
in regard to the in.mortality of the soul, and their religious
views, were greatly in advance of even the refined idolatry
of the Greeks. The surrounding darkness making their light
appear the more brilliant.
When we consider, that traditions of the leading events
of the first ages of the world existed among all nations, and
that references to some of these were preserved in their re-
ligious rites ; and also, that for so long a period before their
day the clear Word of God had been written, and had been,
during the lives of some of the later of these philosophers,
translated into the leading language of the world ; and that
(195)
196 FIRST THINGS.
this word had been continually read or expounded for a
thousand years in the synagogues of a peculiar nation lo-
cated in the centre of the then known world ; a nation,
whose kings, shortly before, were the most powerful on
earth, and the most celebrated for wisdom ; when we bear
all this in mind, instead of being surprised at finding gleams
of truth in the writings of these men, the wonder is, that
they had not clearer views. We should be surprised at this,
did we not now constantly see the " wise of this world" sit-
ting a whole lifetime under the preaching of the gospel,-
without understanding even its first principles. Truly,
" faith is the gift of G-od ;" ' and He alone can " open the
heart" to " understand the Scriptures !" ^
The eloquence, sincerity, and peculiar teachings of these
philosophers drew many disciples to them. Their writings
have ever since been in the hands of every scholar ; and
many of them are now daily used in our schools and col-
leges. And what is still more strange, their dim discoveries
of truth, mixed as they are with great darkness, are what
many of the learned men of the world at the present day are
trying to build their hopes for eternity upon. Many are
preferring the misty speculations, and the cold morality of
heathen philosophers groping for the truth, to the clear
teachings of the " light of the world," the Lord Jesus Christ.
Among the first of these philosophers appears Thales;
who died about five hundred and forty-eight years before
the Christian era, in the eighty-sixth year of his age. Four
hundred years before this, the fame of the wisdom of Solo-
mon was in all nations round about f and he had drawn
people from the utmost parts of the earth to hear him.*
Thirty years before the death of Thales, B. C. 580, Nebu-
chadnezzar issued his proclamation " unto all people, nations,-
and languages that dwell in the earth," stating what
^ Eph. ii. 8. " 1 Kings iv. 3f.
" Acts xvi. 14 ; Luke xxiv. 45. * Luke xi. 31. -
FIRST HEATHEN PHILOSOPHERS. 197
God had wrought towards Mm. He had previously de-
creed, that every people and nation which speak anything
against the God of Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego should
be cut to pieces/ Greece being enshrouded in the gross
darkness of a refined and licentious paganism, Thales went
abroad to obtain knowledge, and became the great mathe-
matician, astronomer, and theologian of his day. His main
doctrine was, that water was the basis of all things ; and
that God was the mind that formed all things out of it ; that
God himself was unmade. He also taught that the world
was full of gods or good angels who were made by God.
He drew his wisdom from Egypt, where he spent some
years ; and he advised his disciple, Pythagoras, to travel in
search of wisdom among the ancient nations.
Pythagoras spent forty years in gathering all the know-
ledge he could get from the Egyptians, Jews, Phcenicians,
and Chaldeans. It was during this search for knowledge,
that Cyrus, king of Persia, B. C. 536, issued a proclamation
throughout all his kingdom, saying, " The Lord God of hea-
ven hath given me all the kingdoms of the earth ; and he
hath charged me to build him an house at Jerusalem." "" It
was also while he was on his travels that Darius " wrote unto
all people, nations, and languages, that dwell in the earth"
with a decree, " that in every dominion of my kingdom men
tremble and fear before the God of Daniel ; for He is the
living God." ^ And also, another similar decree, confirming
the decree of Cyrus, to aid the Jews in building the house
of God at Jerusalem.''
It is remarkable, that about the same time these first phil-
osophers were gaining wisdom from the East, the celebrated
philosophers of Persia, India, and China, commenced to teach,
and to give forth those writings, which, though twenty-four
centuries have passed since their day, are still moulding the
religion of more than half of the population of the earth,
* Danl. iii. 29 ; iv. 1. ^ Ezra i. 1. ^ Danl. tI. 25, * Ezra yI. 8.
198 FIRST THINGS.
In Persia, Zoroaster commenced changing the religion of
that comitry. In India, Buddha began to new-model its
religion ; and in China appeared the celebrated Laou-tse and
Confucius.
Our Saviour told his disciples, " Ye are the light of the
world." ' This has always been true of the Lord's people
wherever they have been. Even when in captivity, or scat-
tered by persecutions, the Word of God goes with them and
prevails.^ It was about the time when the Jews were in
captivity in Babylon ; and when from that place, the capital
of the great empire of the world, its kings, constrained by
the wonderful works of the God of Jews, were issuing de-
crees calling upon all nations to acknowledge the true God •
it was at that time that all these philosophers first appeared.
Each of these great minds, thus partially enlightened, when
they returned to their own countries, began to be preachers
and teachers. Each of them drew disciples, founded reli-
gious sects, and laid the foundations of an influence which
has existed to the present day.
Each of the first philosophers of Greece, Persia, and
China, thus drawing their knowledge of the truth from
nearer the fountain head, necessarily had clearer views than
were held by their disciples. We must bear in mind, that
these founders of great religious sects were only partially
enlightened ; and that they still remained heathen. Not
fully comprehending the truth, they could not transmit even
the little light which they had received to their followers.
The successive teachers in those sects, by adding fables, and
their own fancies, continued to make the stream more
muddy, until, in some cases, the original truth was almost
entirely lost.
Without examining in detail all the erroneous speculations
of these philosophers, in their endeavors to find, or manu-
facture truth ; let us take a glance at their religious views.
» Matt. V. 14. » Acts viii. 4.
FIRST HEATHEN PHILOSOPHERS.
"With all their knowledge, they could not comprehend crea-
tion. They considered matter eteriial, and confounded the
Creator with the thing created. Pythagoras believed that
God was the soul of the world, and that the human soul was
a portion of God. Socrates believed that the mind of man-
was part of the Great Mind. Plato held that the eternal
God made the world, and that the world, proceeding eter-
nally from him, was God. Strange to say, these same doc-
trines are openly taught at the present day by some learned
heathen in Christian lands.
The ideas of the true God thus obtained and held by the
first philosophers of Greece, though very limited, were too
pure for the people to bear. On his return to Greece, Py-
thagoras was afraid to proclaim his whole system ; and So-
crates, though he complied with the religion of the Greeks,
was condemned to death for rejecting the traditions giving
such scandalous accounts of the gods.
We have nothing of PytJiagoyxts now extant : nor is it
certain that he ever wrote any philosophical composition.
It is supposed that his knowledge was contained in a select
number of sentences, which he explained to his disciples.
There are some Pythagorean fragments, which have come
to us through his followers, corrupted by their speculations
and additions. His doctrine was divided into two parts ;
public and private : being afraid, as we have noticed, to
proclaim his whole system. He was noted for loving to see
and hear, rather than to talk. This, together with the want
of authentic writings, involves every thing pertaining to
Pythagoras in mystery. While he believed in one uncre-
ated, supreme, universal God, whom he called Zeus, or Ju-
piter, he also believed in many inferior deities, such as, the
sun, moon, stars, heroes, and demons. He was also the great
advocate of the wide-spread doctrine of the transmigration
of souls ; declaring that he himself had passed through many
such changes. He said that he had received the same in-
200 FIESTTHINGS.
structions from the Druids of Gaul, the Magi of Persia, the
Brahmins of India, and the priests of Egypt : showing that
the religious views held in these different countries were all
derived from one source. Pythagoras died B. C. 496, hav-
ing outlived Thales fifty years. On account of his talents
and influence he was held by the ancient Greeks and Ro-
mans in almost superstitious reverence.
Next appeared the wise and good Socrates^ who sought to
allure men from vain speculations about the universe and
the gods to morals and practical religion. The morals of the
Grecians, like those of the gods they worshipped, were very
corrupt. His great disciple, Plato, said, " That God alone
could save the young men of his day from ruin." One might
suppose that he was speaking of the young men of the present
time. Socrates, therefore, rejected the gods of the poets, or
denied that they were guilty of the actions imputed to them.
He believed in one God, supreme above all others, the Maker
of the world, seeing and knowing all things. In his " Me-
morabilia," he says, " As the soul is known by its operations,
so God is known by his works." He believed, however, also
in many inferior gods ; and spoke of sacrificing a cock to
Esculapius, just before his death. Being accused of contempt
for the household gods, and of corrupting the youth by his
doctrine, he was condemned to death, and drank hemlock.
How sad was that death ! how dark ! notwithstanding all his
wisdom and goodness. How different it was from that of the
true Christian ! to whom " to die is gain ; " and " to depart is
to be with Christ." ^ Instead of saying with Paul, " I have
kept the faith ; henceforth there is laid up for me a crown
of righteousness ; " ^ hear Socrates, when dying, declaring
to his mourning friends, that he was going he kn6w not
whither ; and whether it would be better, or worse with
him, the gods only could tell.
Flato was born B. C. 428. His doctrines, though some-
^ Phil. i. 21, 23. 2 2 Tim. iv. 1,
FIRST HEATHEN PHILOSOPHERS. 201
what corrupted, have been better preserved than most others,
from having been committed to writing. He, also, had some
doctrines which he did not make public or commit to writ-
ing ; warned, perhaps, by the fate of Socrates. By travel-
ing he added to the information which he had gained from
Socrates. His views were so pure and lofty, that he was
called the " divine Plato." With apparently clear ideas of
God, as the Creator, and of His providence, he, at the same
time, unites with Him, in the government of the world, a
throng of gods and demons ; the inferior deities being
deputies of the Supreme, the " God over all," " who always
was, and never was made ; " " who made man and all
things." He said, "The supreme God was hard to be
found ; and when found, not easy and safe to be declared."
Plato wrote very forcibly on the immortality of the soul.
Socrates, who before him had defended that doctrine, had
said, that the knowledge of there ..being no punishments here-
after would be " good news to the wicked."
Aristotle, another of the celebrated philosophers of Greece,
was born B. C. 384. He was a pupil of Plato for twenty
years. Plato called him " The mind of the school." Aris-
totle was the tutor of Alexander the Great ; chosen by his
father Philip. He formed a new sect in opposition to the
Academy — the school of Socrates and Plato, and taught in
a grove near Athens, walking about while teaching. Like
his teacher, he also believed in one God ; " the first immov-
able Mover," as he called him : " the Mind that willed all
things, and disposed them in the wisest and best manner."
He acknowledged lesser gods whom he called " the divinity,"
and he divided the heavens into forty-seven spheres, over
which the gods presided. He says, " It has been delivered
to us from ancient times that the stars also were deities."
He refers also to an ancient writer who considered " Love "
to be the first cause. All other things, he said, " were fabu-
lous ; and used to satisfy the multitude, and for the utility-
202 FIRST THINGS.
of life, and to teach men obedience to civil laws." Aristotle
was the greatest logician of his age ; and his works on this,
subject are still held in high esteem.
About the same time that Greece was being benefited by
the instructions of her first philosophers, Zoroaster was re-
forming the religion of the Medes and Persians. The re-
ligion of the ancient Persians (Parsees) was the worship of
fire, s^ymbolical of the Deity, to which we have already al-
luded. At a later time the ancient worship was changed into
the worship of the stars (Sabeism), especially of the sun and
of the morning star. The priests were called Magi* This
religion yet survives in India among the Parsees, who pro-
fess to be still in possession of the sacred books of Zoroaster.
They assert that they do not worship fire or the sun, but
only use them as symbols of the Fountain of eternal light
and purity. Zoroaster asserted the existence of a supreme
Being, all powerful and eternal ; from whom eternally pro-
ceeded, by his creative Word — Honovu, two principles ;
Oromasdes, the Creator of good, and Aramanes, the princi-
ple of darkness. Zoroaster speaks of the conflict of these
powers, of the triumph of the good ; of a resurrection, and
of the restoration of all things. He speaks of five successive
periods of creation, and of man's being formed on the sixth ;
of man's innocence, and happiness, until tempted by Ahri-
man, the liar, to eat fruit which he brought ; and that man
thus became subject to misery and death. In compiling the
ZendajVesta, the sacred book of the ancient Persians, Zoro-
aster, who flourished about the time of the captivity in Bab-
ylon, evidently obtained his ideas of creation and of the
Fall of man from the Jews.
A recent writer, speaking of the Chinese philosopher,
Laou-tse, says ; Le-eurl, or Laou-tse, " old master," was the
founder of the Taouists in China. He lived in the sixth
century before the Christian era, and was cotemporary with,
though older than Confucius, who once visited him seeking
FIRST HEATHEN PHILOSOPHERS. 203
instruction, and who always spoke of him with respect.
Laou-tse is said to have traveled west of China in search of
knowledge, and thus is supposed to have come in contact
with some of the captive Israelites in the Babylonian empire.
Appearing at the same time with the first great philosophers
of Greece and Persia, with them he caught glimpses of di-
vine truth, and, like them, he was misrepresented by his fol-
lowers, who constantly grew more and more degenerate.
Laou-tse bequeathed his doctrines to posterity in " five thou-
sand words" which constitute the Taou tali king — " The
Kule of Reason and Virtue." The work abounds in acute
apothegms, and some of its passages rise to the character of
sublimity ; but so incoherent are its contents, that it is im-
possible for any literal interpretation to form them into a
system. One of the most remarkable passages to be met
with in the pagan literature of any country appears in this
work ; showing an idea of the true God, referring apparent-
ly to his Trinity of persons, and containing an enigmatical
expression which appears to veil the name of Jehovah.
" That which is invisible is called Ye,
That which is inaudible is called He,
That which is impalpable is called Wd.
These three are inscrutable,
Therefore they are blended in one.
The first is not the brighter,
The last is not the darker.
It is interminable, ineffable,
And dates from a time when nothing existed.
It is a shape without shape ; a form without form,
A confounding mystery !" ^
The three syllables. Ye, ZTe, and Wei, which appear in the
first three lines, are arbitrary sounds, having no meaning in
the Chinese language ; combined they make Yeheiuei ; which
is as near as possible, in the Chinese language, to the origi-
nal Hebrew pronunciation of Jehovah.
* Taou tab king— Uth Sec. W. A. P. M.
204 FIRSTTHINGS.
About 550 B. C. the celebrated Kong-fu-tzee or Confucius
collected the traditions of Fo and Laou-tse. Before his day
the Chinese, while they believed in a Supreme God, wor-
shipped genii and tutelary gods, and offered victims and
sacrifices on high places. The Chinese have always been
conspicuous for the homage they paid to their ancestors,
blended with their religious rites ; worshipping their spirits
or manes, they made gods of them. Confucius confined
himself so entirely to practical things, good laws, and max-
ims of morality, that not a single doctrine respecting the
Deity, and the immortality of the soul, is to be traced in his
writings. His style is extremely laconic. His morality is
of a higher order than that of any other pagan writer.
The doctrine of the forgiveness of injuries is emphatically
set forth and enjoined by him. It is strange also to hear
such words as these from a pagan : " Worship the Deity as
though he were present." " If my mind is not engaged in
worship, it is as though I worshipped not." Confucius,
however, never refers to a pure and righteous God,
whose moral law is broken by sin. The Chinese moralists
had very imperfect ideas of a future state. Instead of a
future retribution, they endeavored to support virtue by re-
wards and punishments administered by Divine Providence
in this life. After his death, Confucius became one of the
chief objects of worship by the Chinese. The whole empire
was dotted over with temples to him. Sixty thousand ani-
mals were provided by government, besides numerous pri-
vate ones, to be sacrificed to his manes.
Speaking of the ancient philosophers, the learned Dr.
Shuckford, in his " Connection of Sacred and Profane His-
tory," says : " If we look over all the philosophers, and
(Consider what the treasures of knowledge were, which they
had amongst them, we shall find that there were many
beams of true light shining amidst their dark and con--
fused notions ;: but this light was never derived from any
FIRST HEATHEN PHILOSOPHERS. 205
use of their reason, for they never could give any reason-
able account of it. The invisible things of God had
been some way or other related to them ; and as long as
they were contented to transmit to posterity what their an-
cestors had transmitted to them, so long they preserved a
considerable number of truths ; but whenever they attempted
to give reasons for these opinions, then in a little time they
bewildered themselves. Under a notion of advancing their
science, they ceased to retain the truth in their knowledge,
and changed the true principles of things which had been
delivered to them into a false, weak, and inconsistent scheme
of ill-grounded philosophy."
CHAPTER XLII.
FIRST THEATRES — FIRST ACTORS — FIRST TRAGEDIES.
THEATRICAL representations have been found in some
form in almost all lands. By some they have been
thought to have originated from a natural tendency to
mimicry, almost universal. This is in a great measure true
as regards the modern drama. But it will be found that in
most countries dramatic representations originally sprang
from, and were connected with, their religion ; that they
grew out of their religious festivals. It was so with the an-
cient heathen, as far back as their history reaches ; it is so
with the Indian in his characteristic buffalo and other dances
of the present day. In early Greece, at the periodical festi-
vals of their several deities, bands of singers and choristers,
accompanied by musical instruments, sang the praises of the
god. At some of these festivals, beside the singers, there
were performers personating fauns and satyrs ; they being,
in popular belief, the regular attendants of the god. Thus
these festivals became a kind of carnival. From these re-
ligious festivities started the splendid drama of the Greeks.
The singers and performers at these festivals were first stim-
ulated to rivalry by the gift of a goat as a prize for the best
improvisation. Hence the word Tragedy, or song of a goat.
About the middle of the sixth century, before Christ, Thespis,
a native of Icaria, introduced a change by coming forward in
person, with his features masked, and describing with ges-
tures some mythological story : and then, by some remark,
or by asking a question, making, from time to time, the cho-
rus join in. On account of this, he is considered the inven-
tor of the drama.
(206)
FIRST THEATRES — FIRST ACTORS. 207
A second actor, with the introduction of dialogue, pceaery,
and dresses, was added by ^schylus, who was born of noble
family about the year 525 before Christ, and is considered
the " father of Tragedy," and the " theological poet'' of
Greece. He and his two celebrated brothers served their
country in war, and were highly distinguished for their great
bravery in several battles. iEschylus came nigh losing
his life once under a charge of profanation, for introducing
on the stage something connected with the mysteries. The
Athenians stood ready to stone him to death, when his
brother Aminias interceded for him, by dropping his robe
and showing the stump of his own arm lost at the battle
of Salamis. The Athenians could not withstand such an
appeal and ^schylus was pardoned. He afterwards left his
native city and went to Sicily, and died there in the sixty-
ninth year of his age. His death, if the common account is
true, was of a singular nature. While sitting motionless in
meditation in a field, his head, now bald, was mistaken for a
stone by an eagle, which happened to be flying over him with
a tortoise in her claws. The bird dropped the tortoise to
break the shell, and the poet was killed by the blow, ^schy-
lus was a follower of Pythagoras. In his sacred tragedies,
seven of which remain, the great problems which lie at the
foundation of faith and practice are discussed. In this re-
spect they find their nearest counterpart in the book of Job.
The actors in his plays handle the grand themes of theology
very much as they are handled by the good and evil angels
in Milton's " Paradise Lost."
Sophocles was born about thirty years after iEschylus.
Being of a wealthy family, he was highly educated at an
early age. When only sixteen years old he gained prizes for
music ; and at the age of twenty-five he bare off the prize in
the tragic contests from all competitors, among whom was
the veteran ^^schylus, who had been for thirty years the
master of the Athenian stage. Twenty times did Sophocles
208 FIRST THINGS.
bear off the first prize. His theology was not so strongly
marked in its character, and had not so much of primeval
tradition as that of ^schylus : proving what ^schylus had
before held, that the more nearly tradition reached the be-
ginning, the more truth is in it. Of the hundred tragedies
written by Sophocles, seven only have come down to our-
day. In his old age Sophocles was appointed a priest to
Alon, one of the hero-gods of Greece. He had previously
served the state as a general and in otlier offices of trust.
He died at the advanced age of ninety. A statue of him,
discovered within the last twenty-five years, and now in the
Yatican at Rome, represents him as the perfection of beauty
and symmetry.
Part of God's plan of saving men is " by the foolishness
of preaching." ^ We have seen that preaching has been in the
church since the days of Enoch. In this God meets a want
of our nature, not only of the word itself, but in the plan of
presenting it. How ready even little children are to listen
to a tale well told! This mode of presenting instruction
was adopted by the first heathen poets and historians. One
of these poets presented his poems with a plot, and in a dia-
logue form spoken by himself and others, and the theatre
appeared.
" The theatre," says an old Roman writer, " was invented
for the worship of the gods and the delight of men." It
owes its birth and growth to heathen worship : and when
introduced it was used to impart instruction in religion.
The drama was first exhibited in open air by day, under the
pure light of heaven. It was a public institution ; and the
audience might be counted by tens of thousands, comprising
all classes of the people. At times there were thirty thou-
sand spectators in the theatre at Athens. Oar ^YOv^i person
comes from the mask worn by the actors in these plays, who
to make themselves heard in the vast amphitheatres, had the
^ 1 Cor. i. 21.
FIRST TRAGEDIES. 209
moutli of the mask formed trumpet-shaped. Hence they
were called per-sona from the sound coming through.
" Strange as it may sound to modern ears," says Bishop
Meade, " the Greek stage came nearer than anything else to
the Greek pulpit ; the people hung on the lips of the lofty,
grave tragedians, for instruction touching the origin, duty,
and destiny of immortal beings. It was the express office
of the chorus, which held the most prominent place in the
ancient drama, to interpret the mysteries of Providence ; to
justify the ways of God to men, and to plead the cause of
truth, virtue, and piety. Hence it was usually composed of
aged men, whose wisdom was fitted to instruct in the true
and right, or of young women, whose virgin purity would
instinctively shrink from falsehood and wrong. Greek trag-
edy carried men back to the origin of our race, up to the
providence of the gods, and on towards the retribution of
another world."
In the course of a comparison of the Greek and Roman
classics, in referring to the writers of the first plays. Dr.
Bethune says : " It remained for one in our own language to
combine the supernatural grandeur of ^schylus, the chast-
ened sublimity of Sophocles, and the truthful tenderness of
Euripides, with the pungent wit (and, alas ! too often the
conceits and the grossness) of the licentious friend of the
young Alcibiades ?"
Speaking of these first plays, Professor Tyler ^ says : " No
Calvinist was ever a more strenuous asserter of the doctrine
of decrees, than the chorus in these dramas ; at the same
time no Methodist ever offered up more frequent or more
fervent prayers." One of the plays says,
" That which is fated may come to your praying."
The great doctrines of hereditary depravity, retribution, and
atonement, also plainly appear in them. Like other pagan
^ " Theology of ^schylus and Sophocles," by Professor Tyler.
14
210 FIRST THINGS.
writings, however, they are inconsistent, confused, and con-
tradictory as regards the only true God. Being produced
shortly after the first philosophers had begun to enlighten
Greece by their purer doctrines, it may have been on ac-
count of these comparatively pure teachings, introduced into
his plays, that ^schylus came so near being stoned to death.
In the writings of the ancients are found many ideas,
which, being revived from time to time in a new form, we
are apt to consider new. Thus Cromwell's celebrated say-
ing, " Trust Providence, but keep your powder dry," appears
in ^schylus in another form : When Thebes is defended,
" The people must pray indeed, but look well to the fortifica-
tion." The Scripture injunction has always been, " Watch
and pray." The reproduction of old ideas caused a French
wit to exclaim against the ancients as plagiarists, " Confound
the fellows, they stole all our thoughts before we were born."
At an early period the theatre became, in a measure, a
political arena : great questions of state were discussed in it
by the help of the ancient myths. Afterwards Demosthenes,
Pericles, and others, by their oratory in the great assemblies
of the people, swayed them at their pleasure. It was to the
theatre the Ephesians " rushed with one accord" ^ when the
tumult was raised against Paul by the workmen of- the
shrines of Diana. Like all human inventions, even when
intended for good, the theatre, instead of making the people
more religious, soon became by its teachings, its surround-
ings, and its associations, a school of vice and crime. In all
ages, and in all countries, its tendency uniformly has been to
corrupt the morals of the people. The heathen condemned
it ; and everywhere it now constantly requires the watchful
eye and the strong arm of the law to restrain its evil influ-
ence.
^ Acts xix. 29.
LASILRN LMPll-U... M 1 CH ALL D U CAS , A .D . 1 7(
Reveris e , Kead of Christ .
\Ei\dicoLt, 8. eo.liah .H X.
TARLN ILIM ( Ineused
CHAPTER XLIII.
FIRST MONEY — ANCIENT COINS.'
THE use of fne almost blasphemous expression "the
almighty dollar," shows the hold which money has on
the hearts of men. The Scriptures tell us " The love of
money is the root of all evil." "" Not money, but the love of
it ; " covetousness which is idolatry." ^
It is not surprising, therefore, that money has held an in-
fluence in history. How small a sum sufficed to form a link
in that chain, which ended in the redemption of the people
of God ! " What will ye give me, and I will deliver him
unto you ? And they covenanted with him for thirty pieces
of silver. And from that time, Judas sought opportunity to
betray Jesus." *
Let us take a glance then, at the representative of that
power, which exerts such an influence in the world ; namely,
money ; particularly ancient coins, or first money.
The study of coins has an interest much beyond the mere
gathering of tokens, or of the cents of the different years,
for which some persons have a mania at the present day.
Ancient coinage is closely connected with ancient history ;
verifying it, and shedding light upon it. There is no reason
why cents of the dates of 1799 and 1804 should be more
valuable than those of 1798 and 1803, excepting, that they
^ Those interested in coins will find " Humphrey's Coin Collector's Manu-
al" a valuable and interesting work on the subject ; also, " Ackerman's In-
troduction to Ancient and Modern Coins."
= 1 Tim. vi. 10. ^ Col. iii. 5. * Matt. xxvi. 16.
(211)
212 FIEST THINGS.
are not so plenty. But ancient coins, bringing to our view
the great rulers of the earth two thousand years ago ; pre-
senting us the likenesses of Alexander the Great and his suc-
cessors, of the kings of Syria, the Ptolemies of Egypt, and
the Caesars of Rome — coins commemorating the great events
of their reigns, showing us the deities they worshipped, etc.
— as we handle such coins, the money of their day, and
look upon the image and superscription, we are at once
carried back to their times. Who can look at some of the
coins of Titus, struck when Jerusalem was destroyed, bear-
ing the words Judaea Capta, and the figure of the mourning
captive under a palm tree, without being deeply moved,
while touch and sight bring to mind the horrors of that
siege, foretold, and so vividly depicted by Moses, sixteen
hundred years before ;' and fix the fact of the destruction
of that city, which will be dear in its associations as long as
the world shall last.
TITUS. CONQUEST OF JUDEA.
Coins are among the most certain evidences of history.
In the latter part of the Greek series, they illustrate the
chronology of the reigns. In the Roman series, they fix the
dates and the succession of events. The reigns of some of
the Roman Emperors might almost be written from their
coins.
Dent, xxviii. 52,
FIRST MONEY — ANCIENT COINS. 213
The first account we have of the use of money Was for
the purchase of a grave. It is found in the touching story
of the buying of a burying-place by Abraham, to bury his
dead wife out of his sight.' Money appears then to have
been in common use. Before this, we read of AbimelecVs
giving Abraham a thousand pieces of silver.^ As cities can-
not live without commerce, it is likely gold and silver were
used as currency in the city founded by Cain, to whom Jo-
sephus attributes the first coining of money.
At the present day among uncivilized nations, and even in
many of the thinly settled parts of the United States, trade
is carried on by barter ; and money, by many, is seldom, if
ever, seen. Traveling traders would naturally take that
which was of general use and not perishable ; also what
was most valuable, and, therefore, could be most convenient-
ly carried. Hence the choice of metals ; and thus, gold and
silver, in the earliest ages, became a medium of exchange,
and served as money wherever civilization existed.
In Abraham's time, as it is at the present day in the East,
and in the adjusting of exchange between foreign nations,
their value, as money, was ascertained by weight. " Abra-
ham weighed the silver, four hundred shekels, current with
the merchant." ^
In the book of Job, the shekel is called Jcesitah (a lamb),
the weight being probably made in that form. We see
weights in the form of sheep and other animals, in the
Egyptian paintings, and they have been discovered in simi-
lar forms among the Assyrian remains recently brought to
light. The lamb may have been adopted to signify that
that weight of silver represented the ;\^alue of a lamb ; other
weights may have represented the value of an ox. The first
Koman coinage, which we shall notice further on, appears to
confirm this theory ; the coins being made bearing the
figure of the animal.
* Gen. xxiii. 4, ' Gen. xx. 16. _ • Gen. xxiii. 16
214
FIRST THINGS.
ANCIENT METHOD OF WEIGHING MONEY. FROM A TOMS IN EGYPT.
The first money of the Egyptians appears to have been
in the form of rings. Ring-money was in circulation in the
north and west of Europe until after the invasion of Caesar :
and they are frequently found, of various sizes in gold, silver,
and iron, both in England and Ireland.
For convenience, a standard of purity of metal and of a
fixed weight was introduced, and used by independent
states and cities, with the emblem of the city stamped upon
the piece. These emblems often represented the deities
they worshipped. On the early coins, a bunch of grapes
stood for Bacchus, an ear of wheat for Ceres, etc. ;
afterwards, the idealized heads or figures of these deities
were stamped upon them. It is not known when these were
first introduced. The utility of such pieces of money be-
came universally felt. The great value of the discovery
was so evident, that its origin became invested with a mys-
tic character, and instead of giving the honor of it to Him
"who has made every provision for the wants of nian ; Saturn,
FIRST MONEY — iNCIENT COINS. 215
Mercury, and other heathen divinities, have successively re-
ceived the credit of this important invention. It is some-
what surprising, that Homer, who wrote more than a thou-
sand years after Abraham's time, makes no mention of coined
money ; although almost everything else, connected with
the affairs of common life in his days, 'is touched upon in his
celebrated writings.
The plentifulness of many coins more than two thousand
years old, and the low prices at which they can be purchased,.
lead many persons to doubt whether they can be genuine.
But coins of Alexander the Great, of Constantino, and of
many other Roman emperors, are exceedingly common, and
can be purchased for a few shillings each, and some, for a
few cents.' As they were the currency of the whole world in
their respective days, vast numbers of them were coined. For
safe keeping, particularly in times of war and of invasion,
quantities of these coins were buried ; the owners were, per-
haps, killed or carried away ; leaving these deposits to be
dug up twenty centuries afterwards. From time to time,
large quantities of ancient coins are thus brought to light,
in different places where the Greek or Roman empire once
extended.
According, to Herodotus, the Lydians first coined money
* The following taken from the priced catalogue of coins of W. S. Lincoln
and Son, London, 1861, will give some idea of the value of ancient coins.
The prices vary according to the condition and size of the coin, and also,
the rarity of the type : some bringing very high prices.
Persian Darics — Silver, five shillings ; Gold, £2.2.0.
Greek Regal— Philip II. of Macedon ; Gold, £1.15.0 to £3.3.0.
" " Alexander the Great ; Gold, £1.10.0 to £2.2.0 ; Silver, from
two shillings and sixpence to £1.1.0; Copper, one shilling and one
shilling and sixpence.
Greek Autonomous — .^gina — Silver, two to seven shillings.
" " Athens — Silver, two to twelve shillings.
" " Corinth — Silver, two to five shillings.
** " various cities — Copper, from threepence upward ; gen-
erally from one to two shillings each.
216
FIEST THIIS GS.
of gold and silver. The Arundelian marbles tell us, that
Phido, the Argive, first struck silver coin in the island of
^gina. How early coins were struck in these places is un-
known : the date generally assigned to them is in the eighth
century before the Christian era. These coins yet exist in
considerable numbers,' and are easily procurable. They are
stamped with the symbol of the state, and, as were the prim-
itive coins, on one side only. {Plate, No. 1, Sardis, Lydia ;
Plates, Nos. 2 and 4, iEgina.)
An Ionian coin of the city of Miletus, now in the British
Museum, is considered to exhibit marks of more ancient
fabric than any coin hitherto discovered.
MILETUS.
The Persian Darics, mentioned by Herodotus, are coins of
about the same period. They are to be had both in gold
and silver. (Plate, No. 3.)
Greek Autonomous — 50 various — preservation indifferent, one shilling and
sixpence the lot.
Egypt— Ptolemy I.— Gold, £1.5.0 to £12.12.0.
" " Silver, £1.0.0 ; Copper, one shilling and sixpence.
Roman Family Coins, Silver Denarii — two shillings and upwards ; gener-
ally about three shillings each.
Roman Imperial Coins, various Emperors — Gold, £1.1.0 to £2.2.0.
" " " " " Silver, from one shilling up-
wards ; generally about three shillings each.
Roman Imperial Coins, various Emperors — Brass, from sixpence upwards.
" " " " " 20 various — ^Brass, two shillings
and sixpence the lot.
Roman Imperial Coins — 50 various, chiefly very poor — Brass, one shilling
and sixpence the lot.
English Coins — William the Conqueror — Silver Pennies, two shillings.
** " Henry II., Edwards I. and II. — Silver Pennies, one shil-
ling and sixpence/ etc.
FIRST MONEY — ANCIENT COINS. 217
The rude indentation on the reverse of the early pieces
appears to have been succeeded by a hollow square, which
in later examples is divided into segments, and these again,
afterwards have some object delineated within them ; still
later, an object appears, occupying the whole area formed
by the indented square, and shortly after the full stamp on-
each side presents us with the finished coin.
At a very early period some of the Greek colonies adopted
a mode of coinage known as the incused. The punch-mark
forming a distinct design, sunk in the coin, corresponding
with the design raised by the die. (See Plate^ No. 9.) The
incused mode was soon abandoned in favor of the more usual
method.
It is remarkable, that they, who established, more than
twenty-five centuries ago, the first coinage as a circulating
medium, laid the foundations of the very forms, sizes, and
divisions, found at the present day in all the various curren-
cies of Europe ; this is strikingly seen in that of Great
Britain : the stater, drachma, and obolus, corresponding very
nearly with the sovereign, shilling, and penny.
The art of coinage rapidly improved, and coins of sur-
passing beauty soon appeared in different states : those of
Philip II., of Macedonia {Plate No. 5), and of his son, Alex-
ander the Great {Plate No. 6), in immense quantities. The
latter were struck in the various cities of Greece and Asia,
the first letter of the name, or the recognized type of the
city being put in the field.
The coinage of that period was far finer than it was
a thousand years afterwards. The Greek and Roman
Churches, holding the truth in unrighteousness, produced
the dark ages in the arts, as well as in other things ;
showing in this also, that a perverted Christianity is
more debasing than a refined paganism. (See Plates, Nos.
7 a,nd 8.)
No coins are found of the kings of Israel and Judah. The
218
FIKST THINGS.
earliest known coins of the princes of Judea commenced with
the shekel of Simeon, B. C. 134-135.
SHEKEL.
It is strange, also, that no coins are found of the Pharaohs, or
of the celebrated kings, of ancient Egypt. The coins of the
kings of Egypt commence with Ptolemy Soter, B. C. 300-285,
PTOLEMAIC COPPER COIN.
and end with Cleopatra, B. C. 50-30. Cleopatra has more
credit for beauty, in history, than her likeness on her coins
would warrant.
.ANTHONY AND CLEOPATKA.
FIRST MONEY — ANCIENT COINS.
219
The first Eoman coins, according to Pliny, were of brass ;
and called, from the device of domestic animals stamped
upon them, Pecunia, from pecu, cattle ; from which comes
our word pecuniary. Some of these pieces stamped with an
ox, some with a sow, etc., are yet extant ; they are quite
rare. One in the Pembroke collection, oblong square shaped
like a brick, weighed nearly five pounds avoirdupois. The
common piece called the ^s, brass or bronze, was first made
of the weight of twelve ounces. The weight of it was after-
wards reduced by the exigency of the State in times of war.
The ^s, or pound, was divided into halves, quarters, ounces,
etc., called semis, quadrans, uncia, etc. The specimens of the
^s now existing have on one side the two-faced head of Janus,
and on the reverse the prow of a galley. This device is re-
ferred to by Macrobius, where he speaks of the Roman boys
when gambling, tossing up the pieces and crying, Heads or ship.
MS,.
The Roman mint was in the temple of Juno Moneta, and
this occasioued the origin of Qur word " money,"
220
FIRST THINGS.
The series of Roman family or consular coins before the
empire, of which there are a great variety, are very interest-
ing ; as in them we first find records of historical events, or
popular traditions : such as one of the coins of the Tituria
family, commemorating the rape of the Sabines, and a coin
of the J^milia family, illustrating a passage in Josephus, who
informs us that M. A. Scaurus having invaded Arabia, Are-
tas, the king of that country, purchased peace of the Romans
for the price of five hundred talents.
TITURIA.
Rape of the Sabines.
EMILIA.
Purchase of Peace by King Aretas.
The series of Roman imperial coins furnish an unrivaled
collection of authentic portraits, extending from Julius Caesar
down to Constantino the Great and his immediate successors.
Their reverses are extremely various : a new coin being
struck by each emperor to commemorate every conquest, and
almost every important event of his reign.
TIBERIUS,
NERO.
The first coins of ancient Gaul or France, and of the an-
cient Britons, were apparently copied from the silver coins of
FIRST MONEY — ANCIENT COINS.
221
Philip of Macedon, wliicli found their way over Europe. The
coinage of these countries became more and more rude as
copies were afterwards made from copies.
EARLY GAULISH AND BRITISH.
This fact shows that a rude execution is not always a proof
of an early coinage. We have already referred to this in
the comparison made between the beautiful coins of four
centuries before the Christian era with the rude coinage of
ten centuries later.
Some rare ancient coins bring very high prices ; but some-
times such coins suddenly become very plenty. In the last
century the coins of William the Conqueror of England were
extremely scarce, and they continued to bring high prices
till in 1833, when an immense number, amounting to about
twelve thousand, were discovered in a leaden chest at Bea-
worth in Hampshire.
It is remarkable that notwithstanding the abundance of
gold and silver in Mexico and Peru when they were discov-
ered, the natives did not use them for currency. The circu-
lating medium of the Aztecs was Cocoa seed. The Peruvians
used for the same purpose the pod of the TJchu or capsicum.
In Africa at the present day the common white cowrie shell
is their money or representative of value. In the year 1840,
222 PIEST THINGS.
nearly four hundred thousand pounds of these shells were
imported into Calcutta for the African market. It is said
that it takes camels' loads of these shells to purchase an arti-
cle of value : making it rather inconvenient to carry a purse
while shopping. In Nubia, rings of gold and silver are the
currency. In Manilla, an iron ring is in common circulation.
In Abyssinia, glass beads, white cotton cloth, and blocks of
salt, are currency. All showing, as we have already intima-
ted, that ornaments or necessaries brought into a country- by
traders may be used as money and become currency, till gold
and silver, current everywhere, take their place ; and show-
ing also, that many portions of the world are about as civil-
ized now as the section where Homer lived three thousand
years ago, where an ox could be bought for a bar of brass
three feet long, and a woman who understood several useful
arts was considered equal in value to four oxen.
From the earliest times the coinage of money was consid-
ere a State or royal prerogative. In all ages to the present,
it was therefore considered treason to counterfeit it. The
Latin word nummus, money, from which comes our word
numismatics, relating to coins, was taken from the Greek
nomos, law — nomisma, a piece of money, to expre-js that
the weight, purity and value were fixed by law.
The counterfeiting of the public money was probably as
early as the first public coinage. Counterfeits of the earliest
coins, apparently made in their day, have been found. They
are of copper, plated or cased with silver, and some of them
are considered by coin collectors, for specimens of art and
as curiosities, almost as valuable as the true coins. That
there were forgers in early days, we may infer from the laws
of Solon, six centuries before the Christian era, by which
counterfeiters were to be punished with death. Among the
Romans, general pardons did not include the forger. Ac-
cording to the laws of Constantine the Great, counterfeiters
were to be burnt alive : and the law of England to a late
FIRST MONEY — ANCIENT COINS. 223
period was, the counterfeiter, if a man, was to be drawn and
hanged ; but if a woman, she was to be burnt.^
Thanks be to God ! that which man needs most can be
bought "without money and without price," ^ faith, and
eternal life, being the gifts of God, through Jesus Christ our
Lord.^
^ Statute 25th, Edward III. ^ Isaiah Iv. 1 ; Rev. xxii. lY,
3 Rom.vi, 23 ; Eph. ii. 8.
CHAPTER XLIY.
TYPES AND SYMBOLS IN CREATION, HISTORY AND REDEMPTION.
IROM the beginning, the Creator has revealed Himself
and His purposes in creation, providence, and revela-
tion. In each of these fields we find a remarkable succes-
sion of types. Every step of the progressive work of crea-
tion has in it a type of something greater that was to come
after it. Every step in the development of the plan of Re-
demption likewise presents a type showing more clearly Him
who was to come. The great Antitype in each is the Cre-
ator and Redeemer of the world. The early history of the
world is, in a great degree, made up of a succession of types.
The mode of worship, which God instituted for the first four
thousand years, was almost entirely typical. Through types
and shadows, through things seen and temporal, we have
been enabled to conceive things unseen and eternal.^
In creation the human appears to be the pattern form, or
archetype of animal existences. In the structure of all ani-
mal forms, from fishes to man, there are striking resemblan-
ces designed to assimilate the lower, as near as circumstan-
ces would admit, to the higher. Thus, for instance, every
segment, and almost every bone, present in the human hand
and arm, exist also in the fin of the wliale, though they do
not seem to be required for the support and movement of
that undivided and inflexible paddle : and one can think of
no specific reason for such a peculiarity of structure, excepting
* Those wishing to enter more fully into these subjects are referred to the
work on Typical Forms and Special Ends in Creation, by Dr. McCosh and
Dr. Dickie, and to The Typology of Scripture, by Dr. Fairbairn. Much of
this chapter has been taken from those works.
(224)
TYPES IN CREATION. 225
the intention of having it brought into the nearest possible
conformity to the archetype. Most strikingly does the sim-
ilarity of the human type, coupled with its relative superi-
ority to the others, appear in regard to the brain, which is
the most peculiar and distinguishing part of the animal
frame. " Nature," says Hugh Miller, in his Footprints of the
Creator, " in constructing this curious organ in man, first
lays down a grooved cord, as the carpenter lays down the
keel of his vessel ; and on this narrow base the perfect brain,
as month after month passes by, is gradually built up, like
the vessel from the keel. First it grows up into a brain
closely resembling that of a fish ; a few additions more con-
vert it into a brain undistinguishable from that of a reptile ;
a few additions more impart to it the perfect appearance of
the brain of a bird ; it then developes into a brain exceed-
ingly like that of a mammiferous .quadruped ; and finally, ex-
panding atop, and spreading out its deeply corrugated lobes,
till they project widely over the base, it assumes its unique
character as a human brain. Radically such at the first, it
passes through all the inferior forms, from that of the fish
upwards, as if each man were in himself a compendium of
all animated nature, and of kin to every creature that lives.
Hence the remark, that man is the sum total of all animals—
' the animal equivalent,' says Oken, ' to the whole animal
kingdom.' In the words of Professor Owen, ' all the parts
and organs of man had been sketched out in anticipation, so
to speak, in the inferior animals ; and the recognition of an
ideal exemplar in the vertebrated animals proves, that the
knowledge of such a being as man must have existed before
man appeared.' "
The history of God's operations in nature furnishes a
striking analogy to His plan in providence, as brought out
in the history of redemption. Here, in like manner, is a
grand archetypal idea in the person and kingdom of Christ,
towards which, for ages, the Divine plan was continually
15
226 FIRST THINGS.
working. Partial exhibitions of it appear from time to time
in certain personages, events, and institutions, that rise
prominently into view as the course of providence proceeds,
but all marred with obvious faults and imperfections in re-
spect to the great object contemplated ; until, at length, the
idea is seen embodied in Him to whom all the prophets gave
witness — the God-man^ fore-ordained before the foundation
of the world.
Again, to quote the language of Hugh Miller, " The Cre-
ator, in the first ages of His workings, appears to have been
associated with what He wrought simply as the producer or
author of all things. But, even in those ages, as scene af-
ter scene, and one dynasty of the inferior animals succeeded
another, there were strange typical indications which pre-
Adamite students of prophecy among the spiritual existences
of the universe might possibly have aspired to read — sym-
bolical indications to the effect that the Creator was in the
future to be more intimately connected with His material
works than in the past, through a glorious creature made in
His own image and likeness. And to this semblance and
portraiture of the Deity — the first Adam — all the merely
natural symbols seem to refer. But in the eternal decrees
it had been forever determined that the union of the Crea-
tor with creation was not to be a mere union by proxy or
semblance. And no sooner had the first Adam appeared and
fallen, than a new school of prophecy began, in which type
and symbol were mingled with what had now its first exist-
ence on earth — verbal enunciations ; and all pointed to the
second Adam, ' the Lord from heaven.' In him creation and
the Creator meet in reality and not in semblance. On the
very apex of the finished pyramid of being sits the adorable
Monarch of all : — as the son of Mary — of David — of the first
Adam, the created of God ; as God and the Son of God, the
eternal Creator of the universe. And these — the two
Adams — form the main theme of all prophecy, natural and
TYPES IN HISTORY AND REDEMPTION. 227
revealed. And that type and symbol should have been em-
ployed with reference not only to the second, but — as held by
men like Agassiz and Owen — to the first Adam also, exempli-
fies, we are disposed to think, the unity of the style of Deity,
and serves to show that it was He who created the worlds,
that dictated the Scriptures.''
As creation presents to us a series of types foreshadowing
the coming of the Creator, so in history, in revelation, and in
the mode of worship which God instituted, we likewise see a
succession of types progressively revealing to us, more and
more clearly, God the Saviour, the plan of redemption, and the
world to come. From the beginning the people of God have
been instructed in spiritual things by means of types, as mod-
els or exemplars. As " the law was our schoolmaster to bring
us unto Christ, that we might be justified by faith,'' ^ and
will continue to serve as such 5 so these types, so prominent
in history, composing so large a part of the ancient forms
of worship, and referred to so frequently in the New Testa-
ment, were constructed to express symbolically the great
truths of a spiritual religion. They yet serve to enable us
the better to understand the things which are spiritual,
while some of them " are written for our admonition, upon
whom the ends of the world are come." ^ The explanation of
the leading types of the old dispensation, showing their fulfill-
ment in Christ, forms the subject matter of the Epistle to the
Hebrews. The prophetical import of types and their connec-
tion with the antitype show that both were preordained,
and that the God of revelation and the God of providence
is one.
Not only are the sacrifices, and the tabernacle, with its
furniture and services, affirmed to have been of a typical
nature, but frequent reference is made in the Scriptures to
various persons or characters, and likewise to transactions
or events, as being typical. Among these persons are Adana
' Gal. iii. 24. J^ 1 Cor. x. 11 ; ix. 10.
228 FIRST THINGS.
(Rom. V. 11, 12, 19 ; 1 Cor. xv. 22), Melchizedec (Heb. vii.),
Sarah and Hagar, Ishmael and Isaac, and, by implication,
Abraham (Gal. iv. 22-25), Moses (Gal. iii. 19 ; Acts iii.
22-26), Jonah (Matt. xii. 40), David (Ezek. xxxvii. 24;
Luke i. 32, etc.), Solomon (2 Sam. vii.), Zerubbabel and
Joshua (Zech. iii. iv. ; Hag. ii. 23). Among the event-s
spoken of as typical, are, the preservation of Noah and his
family in the ark (1 Pet. iii. 20) ; the redemption from Egypt,
and its passover-memorial (Luke xxii. 15, 16 ; 1 Cor. v. 7);
the exodus (Matt. ii. 15) ; the passage through the Red Sea ;
tiie giving of manna ; Moses' veiling of his face while the
law was read ; the water flowing from the smitten rock ;
the serpent lifted up for healing in the wilderness, and some
other things that befell the Israelites there (1 Cor. x. ; John
iii. 14 pi. 33 ; Rev. ii. 17). We look forward, in accordance
with the Revelation, to another Paradise, containing the tree
of life and the cherubim. The eternal Sabbath is also yet
future.
Sometimes a prediction is connected with the type : as
when Zechariah takes occasion from the building of the tem-
ple in Jerusalem to foretell the more glorious temple to
come : " Behold the man, whose name is the Branch ; and He
shall grow up out of His place, and He shall build the tem-
ple of the Lord ; even He shall build the temple of the
Lord," ^ etc. The building of the temple was itself typical
of the incarnation of God in the person of Christ, and of the
raising up in Him of a spiritual house that should be " an
habitation of God through the Spirit." (John ii. 19 ; Matt,
xvi. 18 ; Eph. ii. 20, 22.)
Speaking of these types, McCosh says, " In the natural
kingdom all inferior organisms point onward and upward to
man ; in the spiritual kingdom all life points onward and
•upward to Christ. A typical system runs through the whole
Divine economy revealed in the Word. First, Adam is the
^ Zech. vi. 12, 13.
TYPES IN HISTORY AND REDEMPTION. 229
type of man. He and his posterity are all of the same es-
sential nature, possessing similar powers of intuition and un-
derstanding, of will and emotion, of conscience and free
agency, and God acts towards them in the dispensations of
grace as in the dispensations of nature, as being one. Then,
from the time of the Fall, we have two different typical
forms, the one after the seed of the serpent, .the other after
the seed of the woman. Henceforth, there is a contest be-
tween the serpent and Him who is to destroy the power of
the serpent, between the flesh and the Spirit, between the
world and the Church. Two manner of people are now
seen struggling in the womb of time — a Cain and an Abel,
an Ishmael and an Isaac, an Esau and a Jacob, an Absalom
and a Solomon, the elder born after the flesh, and the
younger after the Spirit."
In short, there are now, as there have ever been, but two
men on our earth typical or representative ; the first man,
which is Adam, the second, which is Christ. " And so it is
written, The first man Adam was made a living soul • the
last Adam was made a quickening spirit. Howbeit, that
was not first which is spiritual, but that which is natural j
and afterward that which is spiritual. The first man is of
the earth, earthy ; the second man is the Lord from heaven." ^
Each Adam was the federal head of his seed. The seed of
the first Adam sinned and died in him : the children of
Christ, the second Adam, forever stand in " their head ',^
having in him a perfect righteousness. " As, by the offence
of one, judgment came upon all men to condemnation : even
so by the righteousness of one the free gift came upon all
men unto justification of life. For, as by one man's dis-
obedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of
one shall many be made righteous : " ^ " as in Adam all die,
even so in Christ shall all be made alive." ^
^ 1 Cor. XV. 45-47. * Col. i. 18.
" Rom. V. 19. * 1 Cor. xv. 22.
230 FIRST THINGS.
Again to use the words of McCosli, " It had been deter-
mined, in eternity, that ' He whose delights were with the
children of men,' should come to our earth in the fullness
of time. He is called ' the Lamb slain from the foundation
of the world ; ' and as soon as man falls, there are symbols
of Him. The prefigurations of Christ may be divided into
three classes : — typical ordinances, personages, and events.
These ordinances all impart substantially the same instruc-
tion ; all point to guilt contracted, to God offended, to a
propitiation provided, and to acceptance secured through
this propitiation ; the four great cardinal truths of revealed
religion, as addressed to fallen man. There were sacrifices,
in which the offerer, placing his hand on the head of the
animal, and devoting it to destruction in his room and
stead, expressed symbolically his belief in those great saving
truths. There was the tabernacle, with the people worship-
ping outside, and the Shechinah, which had to be sprinkled
with blood, in its innermost recesses, pointing to an offended
God, but a God who was to be propitiated through the
shedding of blood. There was the ark of the covenant,
with the tables of the law inside, and the pot of manna, and
the rod that budded, and, over all, the cherubim shadowing
the mercy-seat — fit symbol of an arrangement by which the
law is fulfilled, and provision made for a revival of life, and
a supply of spiritual food by a God ready to meet with, and
to commune with us on the mercy-seat. There is the scape-
goat, with the sins of the people laid upon it, pointing, as
clearly as the Baptist did, to " the Lamb of God, which
taketh away the sins of the world." The typical persons
shadowed the prophetical, priestly, and kingly ofiices of
Christ. The typical events exhibit the same truths in a
still more impressive form : such as the flood, in which many
perish, but a few, that is, eight souls, are saved by an ark
symbolical of the Saviour. The most instructive of these
events is the deliverance from Egypt. The state of the He-
TYPES IN HISTORY AND REDEMPTION. 231
brews as bondsmen, the deliverer prepared for his work by
suffering, the method of the deliverance in the midst of con-
tests and judgments, the wonderfully instructive journey
through the wilderness, with the provision made for the sus-
tenance of the people, and the statutes delivered, are as cer-
tainly anticipations of a higher redemption to follow, as the
fish's and reptile's digits are anticipations of the fingers of
men. We are trained in this training of the children of
Israel ; and by means of the discipline through which they
were put, our imagining faculty has acquired some of our
clearest and liveliest, some of our most profound and com-
forting representations of the method of redemption."
Every Christian sees in the deliverance of the people of
God from Egypt, and in their journey through the wilder-
ness, the type of his own experience. His deliverance from
the " powers of darkness" by the Almighty power of God is
miraculous. While journeying towards the promised inheri-
tance he finds himself constantly falling into sin, and as con-
stantly delivered by his Saviour. He needs daily to apply
to the " Lamb that was slain" for pardon and for righteous-
ness. It is necessary for him daily to gather a supply of
heavenly manna, to feed upon Christ the " true bread from
heaven." ^ He drinks " the same spiritual drink ; for they
drank of that spiritual Rock that followed them ; and that
Rock was Christ." "^ He knows that the great High Priest,
Christ Jesus, after " he had by himself purged our sins,"
" hath entered into the holy place, having obtained eternal
redemption for us," " into heaven itself, now to appear in the
presence of God for us : " ^ and he has the assurance, that when
he reaches Jordan, he will find there Jesus, the High Priest ;
for He has passed before him with the ark of the covenant,
and will be with him in the midst of the river, holding back
the waters of death, until he has passed triumphantly into
the heavenly Canaan.
John vi. 32, 48. 1 Cor. x. 4. » -q^q^ ^ g . -^^ ^g. 24.
232 FIRST THINGS.
God has likewise always used symbols to impart a know-
ledge of Himself and to instruct us in spiritual things.
These symbols should be studied, for the noblest study of
mankind is not man, but God. Paul, who was very highly
educated, said, " I count all other things but loss for the ex-
cellency of the knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord." ' He
might well say so : for the knowledge of Him is the foun-
dation of all knowledge ; it " is life eternal." ^ The burn-
ing Bush, the cloud over the Tabernacle and the mercy seat,
and the Dove, were symbols in which God manifested him-
self. He reveals himself to our comprehension in a most
lovely and loving aspect in the symbolical names which He
has assumed ; such, as our Father, Husband, Elder Brother,
Redeemer, Comforter, Shepherd, Shield, Refuge, Dwelling-
place, etc., etc. Most of the public teachings of our Saviour
were by the use of symbolical allegories, or parables. God
has also ordained certain symbols to be used until the end of
the world as seals of covenant blessings. The great Sacra-
ments of the Church have always been symbolical. Circum-
cision, and the Passover, in the old dispensation, and Bap-
tism, and the Lord's Supper, in the new, are symbols of deep
import ; designed to instruct, and to seal covenant blessings
to the people of God.
We still live under a dispensation of types and symbols.
The great spiritual temple, of which " Christ is the corner
stone," ^ is still in progress of erection. As in nature each
leaf bears in it the image of the entire tree, so each living
stone in this temple is carved after the similitude of the
whole temple. Christ is the "head of the body, the
Church." * Every member of that body, created anew in
the likeness of God, " is predestinated to be conformed to
His image." ^ Here we bear his image ; in heaven, " we shall
be like Him, for we shall see Him, as he is." ^
' Phil. in. 8. ^ Eph. ii. 20-22. " Kom. viii. 29. -
; » John xvii. 3. ■* CoL L 18. ^1 John iii. 2,
CHAPTER XLY.
ANALOGIES IN CREATION AND THE COURSE OF NATURE TO
REVEALED RELIGION.
IN creation, and in what we call the laws of nature, there
are many striking analogies to the great revelations
contained in the word of God concerning His moral gov-
ernment^ man^s responsibility, a future life, and a future
eternal state of rewards and punishments}
As the manifold appearances of design in creation prove
it to be the work of an intelligent mind, so particular causes
of pleasure and pain distributed amongst His creatures prove
that they are under His government, as -subjects under a
moral ruler, or as children under a parent. The immediate
effects of virtue and vice show that we are under such a
Ruler. The natural attendants of innocence and virtue are
a sense of inward security and peace, a mind open to the
gratifications of life, complacency, and joy ; while vice is
naturally attended with uneasiness and apprehension. The
moral nature given to us also proves that we are under a
moral Governor. All good men approve virtuous actions,
and sometimes public honors are accorded to them, while
vicious actions are punished as mischievous to society. In
the domestic circle cliildren are rewarded or punished ac-
cording to their deeds. All these declarations of the Author
of Nature, being so clearly for virtue and against vice in the
^ The leading thoughts of this chapter are taken from the celebrated work
entitled " The Analogy of Religion Natural and Revealed to the Constitu-
tion and Course of Nature," by Joseph Butler, late Lord Bishop of Durham,
to which the reader is referred as the most complete work on that subject.
(233)
234 FIRST THINGS.
natural government of the world, are grounds to liope and to
fear that they will be rewarded and punished in accordance
with His word in higher degrees hereafter.
The general doctrine of Religion is that our present life
is a state of preparation for a future one : a state implying
trial, difficulties, and dangers. In the natural government
of God we find ourselves in such a state of trial. He has
annexed pleasure to some actions and pain to others which
are in our power to do or forbear, and has given us -a notice
of such results beforehand. People often blame others, and
even themselves, for their misconduct in their temporal con-
cerns. Many miss that happiness which they might have at-
tained in the present life, and many run themselves into
extreme distress and misery, not through incapacity of know-
ing, or of doing better, but through their own fault. Every
one knows the hazards which young people run upon their
setting out in the world. Thus, in our natural or temporal
capacity, we are in a state of difficulty and danger, analogous
or like to our moral and religious trial upon which our final
happiness or misery depends.
Many things in nature, besides the changes which we have
already undergone and which we know that we may undergo
without being destroyed, suggest to us that we shall survive
death and exist in a future state. We have abundant evi-
dence that the same creatures may exist in different degrees
of life and with different capacities of action, of enjoyment,
and suffering. Our changes since infancy, the change of the
caterpillar to a chrysalis, and then to a butterfly, and the
vast enlargement of their locomotive powers by such change,
are instances of this general law of nature. The matter
composing our bodies is constantly changing, and every few
years is entirely different from what it was, yet we do not
lose our existence or identity. We know that our living
powers exist, even when through sleep or a swoon we are
unable sensibly to exercise them. We see that men may
ANALOGIES IN NATURE TO REVELATION. 235
lose their limbs, tlieir organs of sense, and even the greatest
part of their bodies, and yet remain the same living agents :
so that we may infer, that they might lose the whole body
and still exist the same.
The same may be inferred, if we consider our body as con-
stituted of organs and instruments of perception and motion.
Optical experiments show that we see with our eyes in the
same sense as we see with glasses ; both being instrumental
in preparing objects for, and conveying them to the perceiv-
ing power. In dreams, we find we possess a latent power of
perceiving sensible objects, in as strong and lively a manner,
without our external organs of sense, as with them. So in
regard to our power of moving or directing motion by will
and choice ; upon our losing a limb this active power re-
mains unlessened : it can walk with an artificial leg. A
man determines that he will look at such an object with a
microscope, or if lame that he will walk to such a place with
a staff a week hence. His eyes and his feet no more deter-
mine in these cases than the microscope and the staff. Thus
our organs of sense and our limbs are certain instruments
which the living persons ourselves make use of, and there is
no probability that the alienation or dissolution of these in-
struments is the destruction of the perceiving and moving
agent.
Our powers and capacities of reason, memory, and affec-
tion, are independent of the body ; so that we have no ground
to think that the dissolution of the body will be the destruc-
tion of those powers. In some diseases, persons the moment
before death appear to be in the highest vigor of life. They
discover apprehension, memory, reason, all entire ; with the
utmost force of affection ; sense of a character of shame and
honor ; and of the highest mental enjoyments and sufferings,
even to the last gasp.
Our capacity of happiness and misery makes the question
of a future life of great importance, and the thought that our
236 FIRST THINGS.
happiness or misery depend upon our actions here adds to
its importance. We see in the present state a system of
rewards and punishments. Pleasure and pain are the conse-
quences of our actions : and we are endowed by the Author
of our nature with capacities of foreseeiug these conse-
quences. All we enjoy and a great part of what we suffer
is put in OUT oiunpoiver. We are to provide ourselves with
and make use of that sustenance which He has appointed to
preserve our lives, if we do not, they are not preserved.
Some by the use of certain means have ease and quiet, while
others will follow those ways the fruit of which they know
beforehand by instruction, example, and experience, will be
disgrace and poverty, and sickness and untimely death. The
pain which we feel upon doing what tends to the destruction
of our bodies, say, by wounding ourselves or by too near ap-
proaches to fire, are associated by the Author of Nature to
prevent our doing what thus tends to our destruction ; and
show as plainly as by a voice from heaven, that, if we acted
so, such pain should be inflicted upon us. Thus the whole
analogy of nature agrees with the general doctrine of reli-
gion that God will reward and punish men for their actions.
Let us now examine the circumstances in the natural
course of punishments at present, which are analogous to
what religion teaches concerning a future and an eternal
state of punishment. Punishments now often follow, or are
inflicted in consequence of actions which procure present
advantage, and are accompanied with much pleasure : for
instance, sickness and untimely death are the consequence
of intemperance, though accompanied with the highest
mirth and jollity ; and these punishments are often much
greater than the advantages or pleasures obtained by the
actions. These punishments or miseries are often delayed a
great while ; sometimes till long after the actions occasion-
ing them are forgotten ; and after such delay, they often
come suddenly, with violence and at once. The excuse of
ANALOGIES IN NATURE TO REVELATION. 237
the natural thoughtlessness of youth does not prevent the
consequences of early rashness and folly ; the success, happi-
ness, or misery of the whole future life depend in a great
degree upon the manner in which they pass their youth.
We have seasons and opportunities for procuring advantages
at certain times, which, if neglected, can never be recalled^
If the husbandman lets his seed-time pass without sowing,
the whole year is lost to him beyond recovery. Though
men may sometimes retrieve their affairs, and recover health
and character, there is a cei'tain degree which, if exceeded,
no reformation is of any avail ; repentance is too late to re-
lieve ; poverty and sickness, remorse and anguish, infamy
and death, the effects of their own doings, overwhelm them
beyond possibility of remedy or escape.
These things are not accidental ; but proceed from the
general laws by which God governs the world in the natural
course of His providence : and they are so analogous to
what His word teaches us concerning the future punishment
of the wicked, that both would naturally be expressed in the
same words ; " Because I have called, and ye refused ; I
have stretched out my hand, and no man regarded ; but ye
have set at naught all my counsel, and would none of my
reproof : I also will laugh at your calamity ; I will mock
when your fear cometh ; when your fear cometh as desola-
tion, and your destruction cometh as a whirlwind ; when
distress and anguish cometh upon you. Then shall they
call upon me, but I will not answer ; they shall seek me^
early, but they shall not find me." ^
There are many analogies in history to the teachings in
the Word of God connecting the salvation of the righteous
with the perdition of the wicked. The signal preservation
of the Lord's people has generally been connected with the
destruction of His enemies. It was thus when Noah and
his household were saved, and the rest of the world were
' Prov. i. 24-31.
238 FIRST THINGS.
destroyed ; when Lot and his family were saved, and Sodom
and Gomorrali were burnt ; when the Israelites were de-
livered and the Egyptians were drowned ; when Mordecai
and the Jews were preserved, while Haman and his follow-
ers were slain, etc. We are told that it will be so at the
end of the world, when the saints shall be delivered and the
nations gathered against them shall be destroyed by fire
from heaven.^ It will be so at the last day, when the great
final separation shall take place, when the wicked " shall go
away into everlasting punishment ; but the righteous into
life eternal." ^
Our Saviour often made use of the analogies of nature in
his parables, especially in those describing the kingdom of
heaven and the great harvest at the end of the world. The
parable of the man who sowed good seed in his field, into
which his enemy came and sowed tares, and the explanation
of it, are full of instruction : " He that soweth the good
seed is the Son of man ; the field is the world ; the good
seed are the children of the kingdom ; but the tares are the
children of the wicked one ; the enemy that sowed them is
the devil ; the harvest is the end of the world ; and the
reapers are the angels. As, therefore, the tares are gathered
and burned in the fire ; so shall it be in the end of the
world." ^ Paul, likewise, in his description of the resurrec-
tion, refers to an analogy in nature. He uses a short method
with the skeptical inquirer who asks, " How are the dead
raised up ? and with what body do they come ? Thou fool,
that which thou so west is not quickened except it die." *
^ Eev. XX. 8, 9. "^ Matt. xxv. 46.
^ Matt. xiii. 24-30, 36-43. * 1 Cor. xv. 35.
CHAPTER XLYI.
NEW MANIFESTATION OF GOD — THE GREATEST EVENT IN HIS-
TORT — THE MOST WONDERFUL BEING — THE LORD JESUS
CHRIST, THE SON OP GOD AND THE SON OF MAN — FOUN-
DATION OF A NEW UNIVERSAL KINGDOM.
THE most wonderful, and by far the most important
event in all history, was the coming of the " Creator
of all things," ^ the eternal Son of God, into the world : his
taking a human nature ; ^ joining it with his divine, and
then, as the Messiah or Christ, suffering and dying to redeem
and save a chosen people.^ It is the great fact of history :
the key which opens history and enables us to understand it.
Through it alone we learn the purposes and workings of
Him who makes history : the past is explained, and the fu-
ture is revealed to us. Take the life, sufferings, and death
of the " Lamb of God," and their results, out of history, and
it becomes to us a sealed book : as it is described by John
in Revelation, "no man in heaven, nor in earth, neither
under the earth, was able to open the book, neither to look
thereon :" until He who is " in the midst of the throne, a
Lamb as it had been slain," omnipotent and omniscient, pre-
vailed to open the book and to loose the seals thereof.^ In
history, as well as in the way of salvation, the Lord Jesus
Christ is the " Light of the world." '
Let us take a glance at the previous revelations of himself
made by the Creator, and at the effects they had produced.
During the four thousand years then past, God had been
» John i. 3, 10 ; Col. i. 16, 17 ; Heb. i. 2, 10. "" John i. 14 ; Phil. ii. 6, 7.
* John X. 15 ; Titus ii. 14 ; Rev. v. 9. * Bev. v. 3, 5, C. ' John viii. 12.
(239)
240 FIRST THINGS.
maturing and developing the work of redemption. While
doing this, He had been revealing himself in divers ways,
each more and more distinct, to the children of men : and
they, with each clearer manifestation of God, had shown
more evidently their hatred of Him. In creation^ " the invis-
ible things of Him are clearly seen by the things that are
made, even his eternal power and Godhead ;" but " they glo-
rified him not as God, but changed the glory of the incor-
ruptible God into an image made like to corruptible man,
and birds, and four-footed beasts, and creeping things." ^ In
His providence^ He had made the sun to rise and had sent
rain and fruitful seasons on the just and on the unjust ; but
everywhere men were discontented, neither were they thank-
ful. He made a clearer revelation of himself, showing that
" God is love," ^ when He proclaimed his laiv and his com-
mandments^ the whole of which are contained in the precepts,
" Thou shalt love God with all your heart and your neigh-
bor as yourself :" ^ but men universally rejected his law : no
man ever kept it.'' He at last revealed himself visibly and
fully : " God ivas manifest in tJieflesJi,^^ ^ in the person of the
Lord Jesus Christ : and although He came expressly to save
sinners, and was continually engaged in going about doing
good, the cry of the whole multitude was, " Away with him,
crucify him." Such is the treatment God has always received
from fallen man : and such is the treatment he now receives
from all men ; till they are born again of the Holy Ghost.
Although during the four thousand years which had passed
since the creation, God had kept a visible church in the
world ; had been continually sending in His name teachers
and prophets ; had given by inspiration a written word con-
taining the evidences of its divine origin by its wonderful
revelations and by the purity of its teachings ; and had been
confirming that word by miracles and by signs following,
^ Rom. i. 20, 21. = 1 John iv. 16. ^ Mark xii. 29 ; Rom. xiii. 10.
* Rom. iii. 10, 20, 23. " I Tim. iii. 16.
NEW MANIFESTATION OF GOD. 241
and by prophecies foretelling events, many of wliicli had
afterwards been fulfilled ; still, with the exception of Judea,
the whole world had sunk into the darkness of heathenism,
when Jesus Christ appeared. And even Judea itself, the
then visible church of God, held the truth in such unright-
eousness that when He who was " the Truth" appeared, Ju-
dea was the first to raise the cry, " Crucify him."
In accordance with the prophecies long before proclaimed
in the word of God, the Assyrian, Chaldean, Median and
Persian, and Grecian empires, had successively passed awa}^,
and Nineveh, that great city, had disappeared. The last of
the great empires spoken of by Daniel was then controlling
the world ; and the time which he had foretold had come,
when " the God of heaven was to set up a kingdom, which
shall never be destroyed." ^ The seventy prophetical weeks
(the four hundred and forty-nine days or years) of which he
spoke, were accomplished, '* when the Messiah the Prince
was to come and be cut off but not for himself." ^ The world
was prepared for the advent of Christ. There was univer-
sal peace : the Scriptures had been translated two centuries
before into the leading vulgar tongue, and were read in the
Jewish synagogues then scattered in the various countries :
many of the promises contained in the word of God of the
coming of a great Deliverer had found their way among the
nations. Men were expecting a great Restorer of the race
and the Jews were looking for the promised Messiah. It
was at this time that the most important event in its bear-
ings on the destinies of all mankind occurred. God fulfilled
the wonderful word spoken by Isaiah : " Unto us a child is
born, unto us a son is given : and the government shall be
upon his shoulder : and his name shall be called Wonderful,
Counsellor, the Mighty God, the Everlasting Father, the
Prince of Peace. Of the increase of his government and
peace there shall be no end, upon the throne of David, and
' Dan. ii. 44. ^ Dan. ix. 25.
242 FIRSTTHINGS.
upon his kingdom, to order it and to establish it for ever." ^
The promised Seed of the woman, who was to crush the
serpent's head ; ^ he " in whom all the nations of the earth
were to be blessed,'^ ^ appeared.
The Messiah was appropriately named " Wonderful^ He
frequently spake of himself as " the Son of Man." He was a
man : and what a man I the most wonderful that ever ex-
isted. When he appeared nearly all men were idolaters :
and the most awful corruption of morals everywhere pre-
vailed ; even in Judea itself. Nazareth, where Jesus lived
from early childhood till he was thirty years old, was so no-
torious for its degradation, that it had become a proverb :
" Can there any good thing come out of Nazareth ?" ^ There
he lived until he entered upon his short ministry of three
years, in a polluted atmosphere, a working carpenter : poor,
unknown, untaught, inexperienced, and unbefriended. What
could be expected from such a man surrounded by such in-
fluences ?
Behold the man ! See him come forth even from Nazareth,
so pure, so holy, that he can challenge his enemies, " Which
of you convinceth me of sin ?" ^ And while all the rest of
the best men that have ever lived have constantly felt that
they were sinners, and abhorred themselves as such, this
man is so pure as to be unconscious of guilt or sin : and can
say, " I do always those things that please the Father :" ^
" the prince of this world cometh, and hath nothing in me." ^
See this man ! without learning, having " never learned
letters." ^ Hear him uttering far sublimer truths, proclaim-
ing more expanded ideas of the human soul and of eternity,
teaching a far higher standard of morals, introducing a
purer worship of God, and giving much clearer views of
God himself, infinitely above all that can be gathered from
* Isaiah ix. 6, V. ^ Gen. xii. 3 ; Acts iii. 25, 26. ^ John viii. 46.
2 Gen. iii. IB. * John i. 46. ^ John viii. 29.
' John xiv. 80. ® John vii. 15.
THE MOST WONDERFUL BEING IN HISTORY. 243
the teacliings of the wisest and most learned men who had
ever lived before him. And while they who are called
the philosophers and the wise men of the world, after years
of study and of travel in pursuit of knowledge, doubtingly
put forth only a few confused, contradictory, uncertain, and
unsatisfactory teachings, with which they confess that they
themselves are not satisfied ; hear this young man, uttering
great truths as one having authority to command obedience
to his words, saying : " Ye have heard this, and that : but
I say unto you. Thus, and So." ^ Well might the officers
sent to apprehend Jesus exclaim, " Never man spake like this
man. ^
See this man! a carpenter's son coming from despised
Nazareth ; not having where to lay his head ; ^ himself re-
quired to pay tribute, and so poor that he had not the small
coin required of him : ^ hear him say to Pilate, '' I am a
king."^ The Jews were then restless under the Eoman
yoke ; they were looking for the promised Messiah ; their
idea was, that he would occupy the throne of David as the
greatest monarch on earth, and make their kingdom surpass
in grandeur all the kingdoms of the world. When they had
seen the miracles this man performed, they thought God
must be with him, and that he was the prophet that was to
come ; and they were about to take him by force and make
him a king. ^ See him escaping from them, turning away
from earthly power and glory, and choosing poverty and
the cross instead.
See this man ! without education or friends : starting a
novel kingdom, hitherto unheard of in the world. A uni-
versal spiritual kingdom in the hearts and consciences of
men. Commencing it by proclaiming, "If any man will
come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross,
"■ Matt. V. 22, 28, 34, 39, 44. * Matt. xvii. 21.
2 John. vii. 46. * John xviii. 37 ; Luke xxiii.- 3.
^ Matt. viii. 20. ^ John vi. 15.
244 FIRSTTHINGS.
and follow rae.'^ ^ A kingdom entirely contrary to the preju-
dices, superstitions and hopes of his own countrymen ; in every
way different from the religious views and the manner of life
hitherto received and cherished by the whole world : en-
tirely in opposition to the natural heart ; and intended to
crush Satan, who controls the natural heart of all men. No
wonder that all classes of men at once demanded that Jesus
should die. No wonder that, to procure his death, Satan
himself entered into Judas .^
See this man ! founding the greatest kingdom the world
has ever seen ; having only a few followers, from the lower
walks of life, ready to forsake him and flee at the approach
of danger ; and beginning his kingdom by telling them, " Ye
shall be hated of all men for my sake." ^ See him calmly
enduring frowns, reproaches, and curses ; never doubting,
never hesitating, never disappointed ; steadily pursuing his
way, knowing and foretelling that that way led to sufferings
and a cruel death. He collected no armies, no resources
of power or war ; invaded no territory ; assumed no state ;
expressly said his kingdom was not of this world, therefore,
his servants did not fight ; ^ affected no singularity ; his
dress, his speech, and his mode of living continuing to the
last the same as those of the common people. He went
about doing good ; uttered a few truths to any sort of
persons, anywhere, at any time, in the simplest words ;
left not a line or a word of writing ; and died an ignominious
death. Hear him in his agony in the garden : " my
Father, if this cup may not pass away from me, except I
drink it, thy will be done." ^ Hear him in his agony on the
cross, praying for his murderers : " Father, forgive them ;
for they know not what they do." ^ Was there ever a king-
dom thus started ? What a king ! What a man ! ^
^ Matt. xvi. 24. » Luke xxii. 3. ^ Matt. x. 22.
* John xviii. 36. ^ Matt. xxvi. 42. ^ Luke xxiii. 34.
' " The Christ of History : an argument grounded in the facts of his life
THE MOST WONDERFUL BEING IN HISTORY. 245
But, still more wonderful ! tliis son of man was, also, the
" Son of God ; " Jehovah, the Lord. Joining the two na-
tures, God and man, he became the Messiah, or Christ.^ To
the world, and to each one of us, this is the most interesting
fact in all history. Our eternal happiness, or our everlasting
misery, depends upon our faitli in this fact. " Whosoever
believeth that Jesus is the Christ is born of God," ^ and
" hath eternal life ; '^^ and " he that believeth not the Son, is
condemned already ; shall not see life : but the wrath of
God abideth on him." ^
To this wonderful being, the Lord Jesus Christ, are as-
cribed the names ; ^ the works ; ^ and the attributes, of God."'
He is the Creator of all worlds ; ^ of all things, visible and
invisible ; ^ and by him all things consist.^" Angels and men
are directed to worship him ; " and to honor him as equal
with God.^^ He is omnipotent ; ^^ having " all power in heaven
and in earth ; " " " angels, and authorities and powers being
made subject unto him." ^^ He is omniscient ; ^^ he is omni-
present.^^ Well might he, who was " God manifest in the
flesh," ^^ say to the leper : ^'Itvill; he thou dean f^^^ and to
on earth," by John Young', a Tery able and interesting work ; proving the
divinity of Jesus from some of the historical facts, which present his man-
hood; has furnished many thoughts for this chapter.
^ Matt. xvi. 15, 16. '' Phil. ii. 6 ; John v. 23 ; x. 30.
2 1 John V. 1 ; Matt. xvi. 11. " John xiv. 14 ; Rev. i. 8.
2 John iii. 16, 36. " Matt, xxviii. 18 ; Heb. i. 8.
* John iii. 18, 36. '" 1 Pet. iii. 22 ; Eph. i. 21.
" Isaiah ix. 6 ; John i. 1 ; xx. 28 ; '' Matt. ix. 4 ; John ii. 24, 25 ;
Rom. ix. 5; Acts vii. 59, 60; Acts i. 24; John xvi. 30; xxi,
Heb. i. 8; 1 John v. 20. 17; Rev. ii. 23.
« John V. 21 ; i. 3 ; Col. i. 16. ^^ Matt, xviii. 20 ; xxviii. 20 ; John
' Col. ii. 3, 9 ; Heb. xiii. 8; John iii. 13; xiv. 18, 23; Acts xviii.
viii. 58. 9 ; Eph. i. 23 ; 2 Tim, iv. 22.
« John i. 10; Heb. i. 2. '' 1 Tim. iii. 16.
^ Col. i. 16. '^ Matt viii. 3.
^"Heb. i. 3; Col. i: 17.
" Heb. i. 6 ; Luke xxiy. 52 ; 1 Cor. i. 2 ; Phil. ii. 10 ; Rev. v. 8, 13 ; vii. 9. la
246 FIRST THINGS.
the winds and waves ; "Peace, he stiU ;" ^ and to the dead :
"/ say unto tJiee, arise ;" ^ and to the sinner : " Thy sins be
forgiven tliee^ ^
The Lord Jesus Christ is well called the " Word ; " * for
in and through him alone we know all that we know of God
and of the way of salvation : he is the only " way " to God.
All the types ; all the sacrifices ; all the promises, in the
Word of God, centre in him. Well might the heavenly
host, at his advent, praise God ; saying, " Glory to God in
the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men." ^
Well might the angel say, " Behold, I bring you good tidings
of great joy, which shall be to all people ! For unto you is
born this day in the city of David a Saviour, which is Christ
the Lord." ^ Well might the disciples be glad, when they
saw their crucified Lord risen from the dead ! ^ Well might
they worship him with great joy, after he was carried up
into heaven while in the act of blessing them ! ^ Well may
we rejoice ! The loving Jesus has entered into heaven with
his human body ; has there all power ; is head over all
things to his Church : is " the same yesterday, and to-day,
and forever ; " ^ with all his human sympathies ; ^° with the
same loving heart, that responded to every cry of distress
that was made to him ; that wept with Mary and Martha at
their brother's grave ; and that raised the widow's son. He
is as willing now, as when on earth, to receive the most de-
graded ; and to forgive even the cliief of sinners ; and is
^' able to save to the uttermost all that come unto God by
him." ^^ Well may the sheep of the King of kings " rejoice
always!" ^" for " He gives them eternal life ; they shall never
perish, neither shall any pluck them out of his hand." ^^
» Mark iv. 39. ^ Luke ii. 10. " Heb. iv. 15 ; v. 2.
"" Luke vii. 14. ' John xx. 20. " Heb. vii. 25.
^ Matt. ix. 2. ^ Luke xxiv. 51, 52. " Phil. iv. 4.
* John i. 1. " Heb. xiil 8. " John x. 28.
^ Luke ii, 14.
CHAPTER XLYII.
THE NEW KINGDOM — ITS WONDERFUL PROGRESS.
THE resurrection of the Lord Jesus Christ from the
dead ; his repeated appearances to his disciples ; " his
opening their understandings that they might understand
the Scriptures, how it was written in Moses, and the proph-
ets, and the Psalms, that it behooved Christ thus to suffer,
and to rise from the dead on the third day ; " ' and his as-
cension before their eyes into heaven ; gave renewed confi-
dence to his terror-stricken followers, who had been so
sorely disappointed at his ignominious death, although he
had repeatedly foretold to them that death, with all its at-
tending circumstances. The scattered few began the assem-
bling of themselves together in his name, in a retired room,
with closed doors, for fear of the Jews. Thus did the
kingdom, which was to overthrow ail opposing kingdoms,
commence its course.
The new kingdom thus strangely founded, was as wonder-
fully to make its way in the world. Opposed to the natural
desires and inclinations of all men ; and intended to destroy
the power of Satan, the god of this world ; it is not sur-
prising, that, wherever it appeared, rulers and people at once
rose up to prevent its progress. In Jerusalem persecutions
immediately arose ; and the humble followers of the meek
and lowly One were pursued even to strange cities, and
taken to prison and to death. The new kingdom, however,
strange to say, was extended by persecutions ; and kept ex-
tending the more, as the world rose against it. Soon the
■■ Luke xxiv. 44-46.
(247)
248 ' FIRST THINGS.
whole power of the Roman empire, which then controlled
the world, was repeatedly put forth to blot out all traces
of it from the face of the earth. But, in three short cen-
turies, we see this kingdom, its subjects gathered chiefly from
the poor of this world, its adherents everywhere persecuted,
yet making no resistance 5 we see it obtain control of the
great Roman empire, and counting even the emperor himself
among its professed subjects. And since then it has been
extending, until it has become acknowledged by the whole
civilized world.
To the eye of sense, no task could have been more hope-
less, than that undertaken by the first followers of Jesus.
A few " unlearned and ignorant men," ^ are sent forth with
the command : " Go teach (or disciple) all nations." ^ They
were directed to commence a crusade against " the lust of
the flesh, the lust of the eye and the pride of life " common
to all men, and cherished by all ; a crusade to overturn the
religions of the world ; they were to proclaim salvation by
faith alone, in One, just put to death as a malefactor. They
were to call men, everywhere, to forsake the faith of their
fathers, to deny themselves, and to take up a cross ; to give
up friends and all their worldly prospects ; to meet persecu-
tions, and most probably to suffer a cruel death. They
were sent forth, warned that they would meet all this them-
selves. What a mission for a few friendless, uneducated
men to undertake ! But they had the eye of faith. They
knew whom they believed. They had his promise : " Lo,
I am with you alway, even to the end of the world." ^ And
they at once, fearless of all danger, and certain of success,
went forth to conquer the world.
The extension of this kingdom in the world has been a
continual extraordinary manifestation of the presence and
power of God : and its progress brings more clearly to view
that Great Being, the glorious Third Person of the God-
Acts iv. 13. ^ Matt, xxviii. 19. ^ Matt, xxyiii. 20.
THE NEW KINGDOM. 249
head, the Holy Ghost; who is now, though everywhere
present, manifesting himself particularly on earth ; person-
ally gathering in the subjects of Christ's kingdom ; and,
while extending that kingdom over the whole earth, is
shaping the history of individuals, of nations, and of the
world.
CHAPTER XLYIII.
THE HOLY GHOST — THE UNPARDONABLE SIN.
IT is not surprising that the world, ignorant of God,
should be ignorant of the Holy Ghost ; but it is a sad
fact, that there is a deplorable ignorance in the Church, in
regard to His person, iand to His work. We are too apt to
think of the Spirit as a mere influence. Till we realize the
personality of the Holy Ghost, pur ideas regarding Him
must be confused and unsatisfactory. May He enlighten
us, as we now turn our thoughts more especially to Him.
We have already noticed the cooperation of the Holy
Spirit, as one of the Godhead, in the work of creation. Be-
fore the advent of Christ, it was He who imparted instruc-
tion to the Church of God ; for we are told, " all scripture
is given by inspiration of God ; " ^ and, " holy men of God
spake as they were moved by the Holy Ghost." ^ The hu-
man body of Jesus, born of the virgin Mary, was " conceived
in her by the Holy Ghost." ^ He afterwards descended
upon Jesus " in a bodily shape like a dove," ^ after his bap-
tism. The Lord Jesus, when he was about to finish his work
on earth, before leaving his disciples assured them that the
" Father would send the Holy Ghost, the Comforter, to abide
with them ; to teach them all things ; and to guide them
into all truth." ^ He also directed them to baptize in the
name of the Holy Ghost, as one of the glorious Trinity in
Unity, in whose name the Church was to be gathered.
If the Holy Ghost had not come down personally among
» 2 Tim. iii. 16. ^ Matt. i. 18, 20. ' John xiv. 16, 26; xv. 26;
^ 2 Pet. i. 21. * Luke iu. 22. xvi. 7, 13.
(250)
THE HOLY GHOST. 251
men, the kingdom of Christ would have disappeared from
the earth when he and his immediate followers left it ; those
sent forth to disciple all nations would never have made a
single convert ; and we, never would have heard even the
echoes of the " glad tidings of great joy/^ There has not
been a true subject brought into that kingdom since the as-
cension of Christ, but by the direct agency and power of the
Holy Ghost.' John expressly declares this when ho says,
that they " who believe that Jesus is the Christ are born of
God ; " ^ " are the sons of God ; " ^ and " are born not of
blood (that is, not by being born of members of the Church,
though of Abraham himself^), nor of the will of the flesh
(that is, not because they have so willed it), nor of the will
of man (that is, not by the power or acts of others), but of
God." ^ " Yerily, verily," said Jesus, " I say unto thee, ex-
cept a man be born of water (that is, enter the visible Church
by baptism), and of the Spirit ^ he cannot enter into the king-
dom of God. Ye must be born again." ^ The subjects of
this kingdom, thus begotten, not of themselves, but of the
Holy Ghost, are spoken of, as having been raised from a
state of previous death to life ; ^ as having had fcdtli given
to them ; ^ and as being created anew.^ This new birth of
the soul is spoken of, as the putting forth by God Almighty
of " the exceeding greatness of his power, according to the
working of his mighty power, which he wrought in Christ,
when he raised him from the dead." '°
The apostles were directed to wait in Jerusalem, until
they received power^ after that the Holy Ghost came upon
them : ^^ then, they were to be witnesses for Christ unto the
uttermost parts of the earth. At the day of Pentecost, the
Holy Ghost descended with " a sound from heaven as of a
^ 1 Cor. xii. 3. ^ John i. 12 ; yi. 65. ' Epli. ii. 10 ; Gal. vi. 15.
=* 1 John V. 1. ' John iii. 5, 6, 1. '" Eph. i. 19.
3 ] John iii. 1. ' Eph. ii. 1, 5. " Luke xxiv. 49 ; Acts i. 8.
* Rom. ix. 1 ; Luke iii. 8. ^ Eph. ii. 8.
252 FIRST THINGS.
rushing mighty wind, and it filled all the house where the
waiting disciples were assembled. And there appeared
cloven tongues as of fire, and it set upon each of them. And
they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and began to speak
with other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance^" ^
Thus filled with the Holy Ghost, the apostles began their
mission to bring the world back to God, by preaching
" Jesus Christ and him crucified." No wonder, now, that
the new kingdom began to spread, in spite of all opposition,
throughout the earth. The same day, in Jerusalem, the very
place where, a few days previously, Jesus had been cruci-
fied, under Peter's first sermon, " there were added unto
them about three thousand souls." ^ And afterwards, " the
Lord added to the Church daily such as should be saved : " ^
so that, in a few days, " the number of the men that believed
was about five thousand." ^
It is of great importance, that we should acknowledge
the direct agency of the Holy Ghost in everything done in
building up the spiritual Church of Christ. Not only is
each member of that Church born of the Holy Ghost, but
" the Spirit dwells in each," ^ making the body of every be-
liever " the temple of the Holy Ghost." ^ The Holy Ghost
calls whom He will, and sends the Gospel to particular in-
dividuals : " The Spirit said unto Philip, Go near and join
thyself to the chariot ; " in which the Ethiopian eunuch was
reading the prophecy of Isaiah 5 and then, after the conver-
sion of the eunuch, " the Spirit caught away Philip, that the
eunuch saw him no more." ^ Cornelius, although he was de-
vout, prayerful and charitable, yet could not be saved ex-
cepting through faith in Christ. His prayers and his alms
came up as a memorial before God ; and the Spirit sent
Peter to teach him the way to be saved. The Spirit said
^ Acts ii. 1. ^ Acts ii. 41. ^ Acts ii. 47.
* Acts iv. 4. ^ 1 Cor. iii. 16 ; Eom. viii. 11 ; 2 Cor. vi. 16.
• 1 Cor. vi. 19. ' Acts viii. 29, 39.
THE HOLY GHOST. 253
to Peter, " Behold three men seek thee, go with them, for
I have sent them." ^ It was on account of the personal
presence of the Holy Ghost, that Peter told Ananias that
Satan had iilled his heart to lie to the Holy Ghosts When
the apostles and elders met in convention, the Holy Ghost
directed them as to the decision which they made.^ The
elders of the different churches were made overseers or
bishops of the flock committed to them, by the Holy Ghost}
In extending Chrisf s kingdom, the Holy Ghost selects mis-
sionaries to do particular work, and sends them to such
places as are fixed upon by himself. " The Holy Ghost said,
Separate me Barnabas and Saul for the work whereunto I
have called them." "So they, being sent forth by the Holy
Ghost, departed unto Seleucia."^ Afterwards they were
" forbidden of the Holy Ghost to preach the word in Asia,"
and " they essayed to go in Bithynia : but the Spirit suffered
them not." ^ And in addition to all this, the life and the
spiritual growth of each member of the Church are through
Him alone ; all the wisdom, knowledge, gifts, and graces,
given to the individual members of the Church, " all these ,
worketh that one and the self-same Spirit, dividing to every
man severally as he will." '^ Truly, the personal presence
of the Holy Ghost, and his continued wonderful working,
personally gathering the children of God, and personally
building up Christ's kingdom, is neither realized, nor ac-
knowledged, as it should be.
There is also a lamentable ignorance, even in the church,
of one of the principal characteristics of the Holy Ghost ;
and that is lovco Being made known to us as the Holy
Spirit, we are too apt to fix our thoughts almost exclusively
on His holiness : and to overlook His infinite condescension,
and His wonderful love. We speak of the love of the Father,
'■ Acts X. 19, 20, 48, 44. ^ Acts v. 3. ^ Acts xv. 4, 28.
^ Acts XX. 28. ^ Acts xiii. 2, 4.
^ Acts xvi. 6, 7. ■ ^ 1 Cor, xii. 8, 11 ; Gal. v. 22.
254 FIEST THI2fGS.
and of tlie love of the Son ; but how little we realize the
love of the Holy Ghost ! God is love. God the Holy Ghost
is love. His names, " the Comforter," ^ " the Spirit of
Grace," ' " the Helper of onr Infirmities," ^ *' the Spirit of
Adoption," * are names of love. The Scriptures, written by
the inspiration of the Holy Ghost, show His love : every call,
every promise, every word of consolation and comfort, is
from the Spirit^s love : overflowing love, to the lost, the
guilty, the wanderer, the backslider, the rebel : love without
measure and without change. See this Holy Being coming
down and dwelling with fallen man. See Him with infinite
love striving against coldness, contempt, and hatred. Though
year after year He is resisted, grieved, vexed, quenched, He
does not forsake us, nor cease his efforts. He goes to the
sinner, follows him, grieving in His holiness while witnessing
his sins ; speaks to him, strives with him, draws him, awakens
him, quickens him, opens his eyes and leads him to the blood
of Jesus. Well may we exclaim : " Herein is love, not that
we loved Him but that He loved us." ^ Then see this loving
Holy Spirit after He has won the soul to Christ : see Him con-
descending to take up His abode in it : see Him encountering
resistance, coldness, doubts, and unbelief; and overcoming
all with love unchangeable and unquenchable. Think then
what the Holy Ghost does in each one whom by faith He
has made a child of God. He leads him into all truth ; ^ He
reveals the things of Christ ; ' He sheds the love of God
abroad in his heart ; ^ He mortifies corruption in him ; ^ He
enables him to persevere, and keeps him in the faith ; ^° He
helps him in his prayers, the Spirit joining with him in the
prayer and making intercession for him ; " He is in him, the
* John xiv. 16. * Rom. viii. 15 ; Gal. ir. 6. ' John xvi. 14.
» Heb. X. 29. ^ 1 John iv. 10. ^ Rom. v. 5.
• Rom. viii. 26. " John xvi. 13. ° Rom. viii. 13
" 2 Tim. i. 14 ; 1 Pet. i. 5. " Rom. viii. 26.
THE UNPARDONABLE SIN. 255
Spirit of adoption, to address God, Abba, Father ; * and He
fills him with joy.^ What amazing love !^
At the gatherings of the subjects of the kingdom, the
ministers of Christ are directed to bless the people in His
name,^ A part of that great benediction, and not the least
important part of it, is, " The communion of the Holy Ghost
be with you all." * Who can estimate the blessings flowing
from that communion ? Children of that kingdom, part of
which is "joy in the Holy Ghost ;" ' hold constant communion
with the loving Spirit who dwells in you : and " grieve not
the Holy Spirit of God, whereby ye are sealed unto the day
of redemption." ^
And ye who have not yet acknowledged the Lord Jesus
Christ the King of kings, as your king and your Saviour^
how long will ye " resist the Holy Ghost ? " ' How long
will ye continue " to tread under foot the Son of God, and
count the blood of the covenant an unholy thing and do
despite unto the Spirit of Grace?"' How long will ye
run the risk of being for eternity outcasts from the kingdom
of God ? There is one sin wJiich is spolcen of as unpardon-
able, God hath said, "My Spirit shall not always strive
with man."' Beware of blaspheming against the Holy
Ghost ; of treating Him as an unclean Spirit : for so long
as you speak against Him, you will never be forgiven,
neither in this world, neither in the world to come," Does
He still work in your conscience and in your heart, urging
you to believe in the Lord Jesus Christ ? there is, then, yet
hope : seek His guidance ; and at once join that great king-
dom which is overspreading the earth and filling Heaven.
* Rom. viii. 15. '' 2 Cor. xiii. 14. '' Acts vii. 51.
^ 1 Thess. i. 6. * Rom. xiv. 17. ^ Heb. x. 29.
^ Deut. X, 8. ^ Eph. iv. 30. ® Gen. vi. 3.
*" Mark iii. 29; Matt. xii. 32; Luke xii. 10.
* Tract of the Kelso Series, entitled, " The Love of the Spirit."
CHAPTER XLIX.
FIRST THINGS IN THE VISIBLE CHURCH UNDER THE NEW DIS-
PENSATION — INTRODUCTION OF MEMBERS — CHILDREN AND
HOUSEHOLDS, MEMBERS — THE LORD's SUPPER — MODE OP
BAPTISM — NEW SABBATH — FIRST FOREIGN MISSIONS^ — NEW
WAY TO GOD — NEW PRIESTS — CHURCHES — FIRST SATED —
FIRST ENTRANCE INTO HEAVEN — ^CONCLUSION.
4 4 /~^ OD created all things by Jesus Christ, to the intent
\jr that now unto the principalities and powers in
heavenly places might be known by the church the manifold
(or greatly diversified) wisdom of God."^ The true church
of Christ being spiritual, is invisible : and the real members
of that church are only those who are born again of the
Holy G-host. The church of Christ has, however, always
had a visible organization on the earth. This was requisite
for its preservation and edification. In it the line of the
Messiah was to be preserved according to prophecy, till he
came. The church was also to be in all ages " the pillar
and ground of the truth." ^ Apostles, prophets, evangelists,
pastors, and teachers, were given to it for the perfecting of
the saints, for the work of the ministry, for the edifying of
the body of Christ." ^ It required elders, who, as rulers and
bishops, should keep its members pure in morals, and from
being led astray by false, teachers.'' The visible church
differs from the invisible in that it has always had members
» Eph. iii. 10, 21 ; 1 Peter i. 12. M Tim. iii. 15.
' Eph. iv. 11, 12 ; 1 Cor. xii. 28.
* 1 Cor. V. 7, 11, 13 ; Acts xx. 28, 30; Titus i. 6.
(256)
THE NEW DISPENSATION. 257
wlio were only sucli outwardly : " for tliey are not all Israel
which are of Israel." '
We have already noticed that all the forms of worship in
the visible church have, from the beginning, been ordained
by the Head of the church ; every other worship being in
vain.^ The types used in the ancient forms of worship hav-
ing been consummated by the death of Christ, ' the Lord
Jesus, under the gospel dispensa,tion, introduced new forms
of admission, and terms of membership into his church.
These, however, correspond with the old. Under the an-
cient covenant, those desiring to become members of the
church were to be circumcised,^ and to take the passover : *
and then, if they did not continue to take the passover, they
were to be cut off from the church.' Both of these forms
were done away with at the death of Christ : " Christ our
passover being then sacrificed for us ; " '' baptism ^ and the
Lord's Supper," were substituted by him in their place, and
they are now the public forms of admission and of continued
membership in the visible kingdom of Christ; therefore,
only those who are baptized, and who continue to take the
Lord's Supper are members of the visible church.
The most significant feature in the mode of worship in the
ancient church, and the most important, was the sacrifices ;
all pointing to the atonement to be made by the Lord Jesus
Christ. These were all done away with when " Christ was
once offered to bear the sins of many :" " " for by one offer-
ing he hath perfected forever them that are sanctified." "
Just before he was offered he joined in the last passover-
feast, and told his disciples that it was about to be " fulfilled
in the kingdom of God." '' He then instituted the Lord's
' Rom. ix. 6, 1 ; Rev. ii. 9. '1 Cor. v. 1.
^ Mark yii, 7 ; Deut. xii. 32. ^ Matt, xxviii. 19; Mark xvi. 16.
2 Heb. ix. 11 ; X. 1. " Luke xxii. 19; 1 Cor. xi. 23.
* Gen. xvii. 10 ; Acts vii. 8. " Heb. ix. 28.
» Exod. xii. 43-48. " Heb. x. 14.
^ Exod. xii. 19 ; Numb. ix. 13. ^^ Luke xxii. 16.
17
258 FIEST THINGS.
Supper : the eating of the broken bread and the drinking
of poured out wine, both to be partaken of by all believers,
as memorials of his body broken for them, and of his blood
shed for them/ Since his death this has been the great feast
of the Christian church, and it will be continued to the end
of the world, showing forth " the Lord's death till he come." ^
From creation, the children of God's people have al-
ways been included in the covenants which God made
with their parents. It was thus with the covenants made
with Adam, with Noah, Abraham, Jacob, the children
of Israel, David, etc.^ In all ages, whoever joined the
visible church and thus entered into an open covenant with
God and his people, brought his whole household into the
church with him. Under the ancient testament or covenant,
Ms children and his slaves were to be circumcised ; and
then they might partake of the passover : * the whole house-
hold thus at once became members of the visible church ;
entitled to its privileges, to its care and its discipline.
Under the new covenant, likewise, the believer brought his
household with himself into the visible church. Thus we
see Lydia was baptized and her household ; " ^ the jailor " was
baptized, he and all his, straightway;"^ and also " the house-
hold of Stephanas." ^ The children of believers are spoken
of as " holy ; ® that is, sanctified by covenant to the Lord :
they are tlierefore to be trained " in the nurture and admo-
nition of the Lord," ^ as already in him. Children are also
expressly addressed as members of the church, and special
instructions are given to them as being in covenant with
God." The Christian parent, therefore, who does not thus
1 Matt. xxvi. 21 ; 1 Cor. xi. 23, 25 ; ^ Acts xvi. 33.
Luke j'xii. 19. '1 Cor. i. 16.
« 1 Cor. xi. 26. « 1 Cor. vii. 14.
'Gen. ii. 17; ix. 1; xvii. 7; " Eph. vi. 4.
1 Chron. xvii. 13, 23, etc. " Eph. i. 1; vi. 1-4; Col. i. 2; iil
•Gen. xyii. 12; Exod. xii. 44,«48. 20; Gen. xvii 7,14: Acts ii
• Acts xvi. 15. 88, 39.
INTEODUCTION OF MEMBERS — BAPTISM. 259
consecrate liis child and Ms household to God by baptism,
not only breaks the covenant God has made with him ; but
he also robs his child and his household of the benefits
of the covenant, and of their privilege of church member-
ship.
The mode of baptism by which subjects are publicly ad-
mitted into the visible kingdom of Christ on earth, is worthy
of consideration. How this is to be performed is not speci-
fically mentioned. Some persons, thinking that John the
Baptist baptized by immersion, and also that the Ethiopian
eunuch was baptized the same way, which may or may not
be the fact, make that mode of baptism a test of church-
membership : and thus not only separate themselves from the
mass of the body of Christ, but also cut off their own chil-
dren from the benefit of that covenant, which, as we have
before noticed, God has made, from the beginning, with be-
lievers and their children. Whatever way John baptized,
one thing is certain, his baptism was not Christian baptism.
His was expressly a " baptism of repentance :" ' and it was
necessary that they who were baptized by him, when they
became Christians, should be baptized again.^ The thou-
sands converted and baptized in Jerusalem immediately
after the crucifixion, could not have been immersed, even had
there been sufficient water ; the authorities would not have
allowed it. In baptism the person is not applied to the
water, but the water to the person.^ The common mode of
applying water in baptism in all ages of the Christian church,
has been by sprinkling. Thanks be to God ! the new king-
dom, which is to extend over the whole earth, does not shut
out them who^ dwell in the polar regions, or in deserts, or
where water cannot be obtained to immerse them : it does
not shut out the dying, or those too sick to be immersed ;
and above all, it still includes the children of His people.
Under the old dispensation, the blood of the sacrifice was
» Acts xix. 4; Matt. iii. 11. ^ ^cts xix. 3, 5. ^ ^cts x. 4'7.
260 FIRST THINGS.
applied by sprinkling : Mt is tlie same under the new ; Peter
addresses Christians as, " Elect unto obedience and sprink-
ling of the blood of Christ." ^ The baptism with the Holy
Ghost is frequently spoken of.^ The mode of that baptism
is very clearly and expressly stated : the Holy Ghost is
poured out upon them :^ the Holy Ghost falls upon them.^
The Sabbath being m.ade for man,'^ the day was changed
to accord with the new dispensation. The first Sabbath
succeeded the finished work of creation ; the new Sabbath,
or Lord's day, the finished work of redemption. The first
Sabbath was the first day of Adam's life after his creation ;
the new Sabbath was the first day of the Church's life ; she
having risen in Christ, her head. On the first day of the
week the disciples assembled themselves together to com-
memorate the Lord's Supper and to hear preaching ; ^ and
on that day, again and again, Jesus met with them.^ John
" was in the Spirit on the Lord's day." ^ And the subjects
of the great King are directed, " every one of them," as a
part of their religious worship, on the first da^y of the week,
to consecrate a portion of their property, according as the
Lord has prospered them.^*^
Another new thing in the Church was the work of Foreign
Missions. The sending forth of ambassadors for Christ " to
go into all the world and preach the Gospel to every crea-
ture," ^^ and " beseech men to be reconciled to God." ^^ Be-
fore this the knowledge of the way of salvation was confined
to the land of Israel alone.
One of the most remarkable events of this period was the
opening of all parts of the world to the special manifesta-
tions of the presence of God. Previously, He had, although
' Heb. ix. 21 ; Ex. xxix. 20 ; Lev. xvi. 14, 19. ' Acts xx. 1.
2 1 Pet. i. 2 ; Heb. xii. 24. ^ John xx. 19, 26.
2 Acts i. 5 ; Mark i. 8. ^ Rev. i. 10.
* Acts ii. 3, 18 ; x. 45. " 1 Cor. xvi. 2.
^ Acts xi. 15, 16"; xix. 6. " Mark xvi. 15.
« Mark ii. 27. " 2 Cor v. 2.0.
NEW WAY TO GOD — NEW PRIESTS. 261
everywhere present, chosen one particular spot where He
revealed himself, and where only He was to be approached.
- God came down visibly on Mount Sinai ; and went into the
Tabernacle ; and dwelt in it during all the journeys of the
children of Israel in the wilderness : He then took up his
abode with the ark of the covenant within the most holy
place in the Temple at Jerusalem. There only could he be
approached ; and there only could offerings be made to Him.
According to His law, " three times in the year all the males
in Israel were required to go to that place and to present
themselves before the Lord God, the God of Israel." ^ Even
there, the sinner could only approach God through an aton-
ing sacrifice, the blood of which was to be presented to God
by the High Priest. A new way to God was opened to
all the world by the Lord Jesus Christ, at once the victim
and the priest ; the magnificent temple with all its gorgeous
service, the sacrifice of atonement, and the high priest,
which were types of Christ, were done away with : ^ and
thenceforth men could have free access to God through the
Lord Jesus Christ in any part of the world : having the
special promises of the Lord Jesus, " where two or three are
gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of
them ;" ^ and, " if ye shall ask anything in my name, I will
doit."*
The Lord Jesus having entered into heaven not only as
king, but as the High Priest of his church ; ^ the special
order of Priests was abolished : and now every Christian is
a priest.^
The Church, or visible kingdom of Christ, continued to
assemble in all places where disciples could be gathered to
hold public worship ; meetings for prayer and singing, in
' Exod. xxiii. 17 ; xxxiv. 23, 24.
2 Heb. vii. 11 ; viii. 1, 5; ix. 8, 9, 14, 23, 24; x. 19, 22.
" Matt, xviii. 20. " John xiv. 14. ^ Heb. ix. 24; vii. 25.
" 1 Peter ii 9 , Isaiah Ixi. 6 ; Rev. i. 6 ; Rom. xii. 1 ; Rev. xx. 6.
262 FIKST THINGS.
which all Christians joined, to edify one another and to re-
ceive instruction out of the word of God/ These services
corresponded with that of the Synagogue under the old dis-
pensation : "" and like the synagogue, each church was gov-
erned by a number of elders, who were the overseers or
bishops : ^ and had deacons also, whose special office was to
have the charge of the poor of Christ's flock."
The term " church,^'' for some centuries after the Chris-
tian era, was not applied to the buildings where Christians
met ; but to the elect of God, or to particular congregations
of believers wherever they met, even if in a private house.^
The mode of worship of the early Christians was exceed-
ingly simple : but it had the characteristic of being " in
Spirit and in truth." As the kingdom of Christ made pro-
gress, Christianity became fashionable : the world joined the
church ; cathedral service and gorgeous ceremonial forms
took the place of worship and of the meeting for prayer and
mutual edification ; preachers preached anything but " Christ
and him crucified ;" and the awful crime, now so common in
many churches, was introduced, of hiring opera singers, or of
allowing persons not Christians to mock God with pretended
worship, to lie unto the Holy Ghost, and to sing what on
their part is blasphemy.
The circumstances connected with the conversion of the
first one converted and saved after the crucifixion, are wor-
thy of consideration. They show, that however important
the sacraments of Baptism and the Lord's Supper are to the
perpetuity and edification of the Church, believers may be
saved without them. We see a vile criminal who, according
to his own confession deserved death, while sufiering the
penalty due to his crimes and just before his death, suddenly
» Matt. xxvi. 30; Col. iii. 16 ; Eph. v. 19 ; 1 Cor. xiv. 26.
' Acts xiii. 15 ; Luke iv. 16.
' Titus i. 5, 7 ; Acts xiv. 23; xv. 4; xx. 17, 28. * Acts vi. 8.
' Rom. xvi. 5 ; 1 Cor. xiv. 23 ; xvi. 19.
FIRST ENTRANCE INTO HEAYEN. 263
ceasing his blasphemies, acknowledging the Lord Jesus Christ
and praying to Him. We also see him at once accepted,
and immediately taken to heaven/ He was not only saved,
but he was at once assured of his salvation ; without going
through a long previous conflict of agonizing doubts and
fears before coming to Christ and receiving Him and his
salvation — without being baptized — or confirmed — or taking
the communion — without subsequent misgivings — and with-
out doing any good works. He was saved simply, and in-
stantaneously, by faith in the Lord Jesus Christ. It is also
worthy of notice that while he was saved by grace, his dying
companion, having the Saviour just as near, and having ap-
parently equal advantages, was lost.
The Lord's answer to the dying thief, " Yerily I say unto
thee, this day shalt thou be with me in paradise," " shows
that believers at death go immediately to heaven. He had
previously told Nicodemus that He was in heaven, even
while on earth.^ The Saviour ascended afterwards bodily
into heaven.* Stephen while dying saw the heavens opened :
and seeing Jesus there he commended his spirit into his
hands.^ Paul tells us " to be absent from the body is to be
present with the Lord ;" ^ and he said " he had a desire to
depart and to be with Christ.'" He also tells us that,
" Them who sleep in Jesus will God bring with him" at the
last great day.® Till that day part of the one great family
of Christ are on earth, and part are in heaven.^
The time foretold in prophecy appears to be at hand, when
we shall hear tlie great proclamation, " The kingdoms of this
world have become the kingdoms of the Lord and of his
Christ." ^° We see a shaking among the nations. The day
of the Millennium, when Satan is to be bound a thousand
' Mark xv. 32 ; Luke ' Jolin iii. 13. ^ ^2 Cor. y. 8.
xxiii. 41, 43. •* Acts i. 11. ' Phil. i. 23.
' Luke xxiii. 43. ^ Acts. vii. 56. ^ 1 Thess. iv. 14.
» Eph. iii. 15. " Rev. xi. 15.
264 FIRST THINGS. -
years, is dawning. When that is ended, " the day of the Lord ,
will come as a thief in the night ; in the which the heavens
shall pass away with a great noise, and the elements shall
melt with fervent heat, the earth also and the works that
are therein shall be burned up."
Connecting thus the end of history with its beginning,
let us acknowledge Him who is directing and shaping that
history in accordance with His word : we will then with
joyful hope be " looking for and hasting unto the coming of
the day of God ;" ^ and join the people of God in saying,
*' Even so come quickly Lord Jesus." ^
^ 2 Peter iii. 10, 12. ' Rev, xxii. 20.
FC.B I
%\QS\
<^o^
.V ^
.N^ ^
O-
« X
S^^
--.<^--\/..^^..V'^^^^^c5^^--^^<^'^^^^^^^--^
0^ .
O-
s^^., <^^^^^\o^^.s^...<>. ^^-\o^^
c? .^^:i:-. ^.
<^ '^ ..
}>-^ »/<
rr ^
-^ VV> O.
^' %^'''^^<^^-^^S^'''\^.^y:^^